Selected quad for the lemma: kingdom_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
kingdom_n power_n prince_n subject_n 2,548 5 6.3696 4 false
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A04779 The right and iurisdiction of the prelate, and the prince. Or, A treatise of ecclesiasticall, and regall authoritie. Compyled by I.E. student in diuinitie for the ful instruction and appeaceme[n]t of the consciences of English Catholikes, co[n]cerning the late oath of pretended allegeance. Togeather with a cleare & ample declaratio[n], of euery clause thereof, newlie reuewed and augmented by the authoure Kellison, Matthew. 1621 (1621) STC 14911; ESTC S107942 213,012 425

There are 28 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

with_o his_o own_o blood_n but_o neither_o he_o nor_o any_o apostle_n ever_o give_v that_o charge_n to_o prince_n fiftelie_o they_o differ_v in_o the_o cause_n efficient_a for_o the_o civil_a and_o temporal_a power_n proceed_v from_o god_n and_o nature_n by_o mean_n of_o the_o people_n election_n as_o be_v in_o the_o former_a chapter_n declare_v but_o the_o spiritual_a power_n of_o the_o church_n as_o it_o impli_v potestatem_fw-la ordinis_fw-la &_o jurisdictionis_fw-la in_o foro_fw-la interiori_fw-la be_v from_o god_n immediate_o it_o be_v supernatural_a and_o exceed_v humane_a power_n and_o although_o the_o ecclesiastical_a humane_a power_n which_o inferior_a prelate_n have_v proceed_v from_o superior_a prelate_n especial_o the_o pope_n yet_o not_o from_o the_o prince_n or_o common_a wealth_n but_o from_o the_o pastor_n and_o church_n so_o that_o as_o the_o pope_n priest_n and_o church_n do_v willing_o acknowledge_v the_o temporal_a and_o civil_a power_n of_o the_o prince_n magistrate_n and_o common_a wealth_n or_o kingdom_n so_o the_o prince_n magistrate_n and_o common_a wealth_n must_v be_v content_a to_o recognize_v a_o spiritual_a power_n of_o the_o pope_n bishop_n priest_n and_o church_n to_o which_o obedience_n be_v due_a even_o of_o prince_n who_o be_v subject_a to_o the_o church_n no_o less_o than_o be_v temporal_a subject_n to_o the_o prince_n yea_o rather_o more_o 7._o this_o power_n all_o true_a christian_n and_o catholic_n acknowledge_v none_o but_o heretic_n and_o infidel_n deny_v the_o waldense_n 7._o guido_n carmel_n in_o har_z wald_n turrecr_n l._n 4._o summa_fw-la de_fw-la eccl_n c._n 35._o conc_fw-fr const_n sess_v 8._o et_fw-la 15._o a._n 14_o luth._o a._n 27._o dan_o in_o bulla_n leon._n 10_o cal_n l._n 4._o inst_z ca._n 20_o n._n 6._o &_o 7._o as_o witness_v guido_n and_o turrecremata_fw-la as_o also_o wicleph_n and_o hus_n as_o the_o council_n of_o constance_n relate_v deny_v all_o ecclesiastical_a power_n and_o say_v that_o pope_n and_o bishop_n decree_n and_o canon_n do_v not_o bind_v any_o the_o same_o be_v luther_n opinion_n caluin_n affirm_v that_o neither_o the_o pope_n nor_o his_o mitre_a caluin_n say_v horn_v bishop_n can_v bind_v man_n conscience_n by_o their_o decree_n and_o ordinance_n and_o that_o for_o two_o cause_n first_o because_o they_o be_v no_o true_a bishop_n which_o yet_o neither_o he_o nor_o all_o his_o sect_n can_v ever_o prove_v secondlie_o because_o though_o they_o be_v true_a bishop_n yet_o they_o be_v not_o legislatour_n or_o lawmaker_n that_o title_n agree_v only_o to_o christ_n only_o he_o and_o his_o grant_n that_o they_o may_v inculcate_v god_n law_n but_o make_v no_o new_a 8._o well_o it_o be_v know_v that_o be_v be_v always_o the_o manner_n of_o heretic_n to_o contemn_v all_o ecclesiastical_a authority_n because_o it_o condemn_v they_o but_o as_o i_o have_v allege_v proof_n in_o the_o former_a chapter_n for_o civil_a power_n of_o prince_n so_o can_v i_o not_o want_v argument_n for_o the_o spiritual_a and_o ecclesiastical_a power_n when_o christ_n promise_v peter_n that_o he_o shall_v be_v the_o foundation_n and_o head_n of_o the_o church_n he_o promise_v this_o power_n in_o and_o over_o the_o church_n 16._o mat._n 16._o for_o if_o peter_n be_v head_n of_o the_o church_n he_o can_v rule_v the_o mystical_a body_n and_o if_o he_o can_v rule_v the_o same_o then_o can_v he_o also_o make_v ecclesiastical_a law_n for_o that_o be_v belong_v to_o a_o superior_a of_o every_o great_a and_o perfect_a community_n as_o be_v before_o show_v secondlie_o christ_n give_v this_o power_n to_o peter_n when_o after_o his_o resurrection_n he_o say_v pasce_fw-la oves_fw-la meas_fw-la feed_v my_o sheep_n 21._o joan._n 21._o for_o the_o office_n of_o a_o pastor_n may_v be_v gather_v by_o the_o office_n of_o a_o shepherd_n who_o be_v to_o govern_v his_o sheep_n to_o feed_v they_o and_o to_o defend_v they_o from_o the_o wolf_n and_o so_o a_o spiritual_a shepherd_n and_o pastor_n must_v have_v authority_n to_o rule_v by_o law_n to_o feed_v by_o preach_v and_o sacrament_n and_o to_o defend_v by_o censure_n and_o his_o pastoral_a staff_n and_o coercive_v power_n 4._o eph._n 4._o whereupon_o saint_n paul_n say_v that_o christ_n have_v give_v to_o his_o church_n not_o only_a doctor_n and_o prophet_n to_o teach_v but_o also_o pastor_n to_o feed_v and_o govern_v and_o see_v that_o the_o church_n have_v as_o much_o need_n now_o of_o a_o supreme_a visible_a pastor_n and_o rather_o more_o then_o at_o the_o begin_v it_o follow_v that_o peter_n have_v a_o successor_n who_o have_v the_o like_a authority_n and_o see_v that_o all_o father_n all_o council_n all_o history_n all_o practice_n of_o the_o church_n possession_n and_o prescription_n for_o 1600._o year_n stand_v for_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n he_o be_v this_o successor_n and_o he_o it_o be_v that_o have_v the_o supreme_a ecclesiastical_a and_o spiritual_a power_n after_o christ_n thirdlie_o 18._o mat._n 18._o christ_n command_v to_o obey_v the_o church_n and_o say_v that_o he_o that_o will_v not_o give_v ear_n to_o the_o church_n be_v to_o be_v account_v as_o a_o ethnic_a and_o publican_n which_o be_v a_o sign_n that_o the_o church_n have_v authority_n and_o jurisdiction_n to_o hear_v cause_n and_o to_o pronounce_v sentence_n to_o which_o obedience_n be_v to_o be_v give_v fourthlie_o not_o withstand_v that_o in_o the_o old_a law_n of_o moses_n god_n determine_v almost_o all_o by_o himself_o by_o his_o moral_n judicial_a and_o ceremonial_a law_n yet_o he_o give_v power_n to_o the_o synagogue_n and_o her_o pastor_n to_o interpret_v the_o law_n to_o resolve_v doubt_n concern_v the_o law_n and_o to_o enact_v some_o law_n as_o occasion_n be_v offer_v and_o therefore_o we_o see_v with_o what_o severity_n god_n command_v obedience_n to_o the_o priest_n say_v 17_o deut._n 17_o si_fw-mi difficile_fw-la &_o ●mbiguum_fw-la &c._n &c._n if_o thou_o perceive_v that_o the_o judgement_n with_o thou_o be_v hard_a and_o doubtful_a between_o blood_n and_o blood_n cause_n and_o cause_n leprosy_n and_o leprosy_n and_o thou_o ●●e_v that_o the_o word_n of_o the_o judge_n within_o thy_o gate_n do_v ●arie_a arise_v and_o ge_fw-mi up_o to_o the_o place_n which_o our_o lord_n thy_o god_n shall_v choose_v and_o thou_o shall_v come_v to_o the_o priest_n of_o the_o leviticall_a stock_n and_o to_o the_o judge_n that_o shall_v be_v at_o that_o time_n and_o thou_o shall_v ask_v of_o they_o who_o shall_v thew_v thou_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o judgement_n and_o thou_o shall_v do_v what_o soever_o they_o that_o be_v precedent_n of_o the_o place_n which_o our_o lord_n shall_v choose_v shall_v say_v and_o teach_v thou_o according_a to_o his_o law_n and_o thou_o shall_v follow_v the_o sentence_n etc._n etc._n and_o he_o that_o shall_v be_v prove_v refuse_v to_o obey_v the_o commandment_n of_o the_o priest_n which_o at_o that_o time_n minister_v to_o our_o lord_n thy_o god_n and_o the_o decree_n of_o the_o judge_n that_o man_n shall_v die_v and_o thou_o shall_v take_v away_o the_o evil_a out_o of_o israel_n and_o the_o whole_a people_n shall_v fear_v that_o none_o asterward_o swell_v with_o pride_n by_o which_o we_o see_v that_o the_o high_a priest_n have_v power_n not_o only_o directive_a but_o also_o coercive_v under_o pain_n of_o death_n and_o we_o read_v how_o the_o victory_n of_o judith_n over_o holofernes_n be_v celebrate_v by_o the_o jew_n with_o commandment_n of_o a_o holy_a day_n ult._n judith_n ult._n which_o law_n be_v mere_o ecclesiastical_a make_v by_o the_o priest_n and_o be_v not_o command_v by_o god_n his_o law_n the_o like_a festival_n day_n be_v decree_v by_o mardocheus_n and_o receive_v by_o the_o jew_n in_o memory_n of_o their_o delivery_n from_o amans_fw-la tyranny_n by_o mean_n of_o hester_n 9_o hester_n 9_o which_o also_o be_v no_o divine_a but_o a_o humane_a and_o ecclesiastical_a law_n likewise_o the_o maccabee_n institute_v the_o feast_n of_o the_o dedication_n 10._o 1._o mach._n 4._o joan._n 10._o which_o christ_n afterward_o observe_v with_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o jew_n and_o yet_o this_o be_v not_o command_v by_o god_n his_o law_n again_o christ_n command_v to_o do_v that_o which_o they_o who_o sit_v in_o moses_n chair_n do_v say_v 23._o mat._n 23._o but_o not_o always_o what_o they_o do_v much_o more_o will_v he_o have_v we_o to_o do_v that_o 15._o lib._n 4._o inst_z cap._n 20._o n._n 21._o act._n 15._o which_o they_o who_o sit_v in_o saint_n peter_n yea_o christ_n seat_n do_v command_n and_o we_o read_v in_o the_o act_n which_o caluin_n well_o see_v but_o gloss_v untowardlie_a how_o the_o apostle_n in_o their_o first_o council_n make_v a_o new_a law_n by_o which_o they_o command_v the_o convert_v gentile_n to_o abstain_v from_o eat_v of_o blood_n and_o thing_n strangle_v which_o be_v now_o the_o old_a law_n be_v abrogate_a thing_n
regna_fw-la that_fw-mi coelestia_fw-la that_o christ_n be_v come_v why_o do_v thou_o dread_a o_o herode_fw-la thau_fw-fr ungodlie_a foe_n he_o do_v not_o earthly_a kingdom_n reave_v that_o heavenly_a kingdom_n do_v bestow_v 4._o and_o so_o although_o christ_n be_v even_o as_o man_n a_o temporal_a king_n yet_o he_o not_o actual_o reign_v himself_o it_o be_v not_o likely_a that_o he_o shall_v give_v any_o such_o authority_n to_o s._n peter_n and_o the_o pope_n his_o successor_n and_o although_o he_o have_v actual_o reign_v himself_o yet_o it_o be_v not_o necessary_a that_o he_o shall_v give_v that_o authority_n to_o s._n peter_n for_o he_o have_v also_o the_o power_n of_o excellency_n by_o which_o he_o may_v command_v even_o infidel_n not_o baptize_v and_o by_o which_o he_o institute_v a_o church_n sacrament_n and_o a_o priesthood_n which_o s._n peter_n and_o the_o pope_n his_o successor_n can_v not_o do_v certes_o none_o can_v deny_v but_o that_o christ_n may_v have_v give_v s._n peter_n supreme_a jurisdiction_n spiritual_a over_o the_o church_n without_o temporal_a because_o as_o spiritual_a power_n be_v not_o necessary_o annex_v to_o the_o temporal_a as_o i_o have_v prove_v in_o the_o former_a chapter_n so_o temporal_a power_n be_v not_o necessary_o join_v to_o the_o spiritual_a and_o therefore_o see_v that_o neither_o the_o law_n of_o god_n nor_o nature_n nor_o man_n give_v any_o such_o temporal_a jurisdiction_n to_o the_o chief_a pastor_n of_o the_o church_n why_o shall_v either_o he_o challenge_v it_o or_o we_o give_v it_o he_o especial_o it_o be_v a_o thing_n very_o inconvenient_a and_o odious_a that_o either_o the_o church_n or_o her_o chief_a pastor_n shall_v have_v any_o such_o temporal_a power_n for_o if_o it_o be_v so_o that_o the_o church_n or_o her_o supreme_a pastor_n have_v any_o such_o soveraintie_n it_o will_v deter_v all_o pagan_a king_n and_o prince_n from_o our_o religion_n fear_v lest_o the_o church_n by_o her_o absolute_a authority_n may_v deprive_v they_o of_o their_o kingdom_n crown_n and_o sceptre_n at_o her_o pleasure_n and_o hence_o it_o be_v that_o the_o pope_n themselves_o confess_v that_o they_o have_v no_o imperial_a nor_o kingly_a authority_n give_v they_o by_o christ_n but_o rather_o that_o these_o two_o power_n be_v in_o distinct_a subject_n so_o nicholas_n pope_n say_v cum_fw-la ad_fw-la verum_fw-la ventum_fw-la est_fw-la etc._n etc._n 78._o ca._n cum_fw-la ad_fw-la verum_fw-la d._n 96._o vide_fw-la supra_fw-la pa._n 66._o et_fw-la pag._n 78._o when_o it_o come_v to_o the_o understanding_n of_o the_o truth_n neither_o do_v the_o emperor_n take_v unto_o he_o the_o right_n of_o bishop-like_a authority_n nor_o do_v the_o bishop_n usurp_v the_o name_n of_o the_o emperor_n because_o the_o same_o mediator_n of_o god_n and_o man_n man_n christ_n jesus_n have_v distinguish_v the_o office_n of_o both_o power_n by_o their_o proper_a and_o distinct_a dignity_n as_o that_o christian_a emperor_n for_o attain_v eternal_a life_n shall_v need_v bishop_n and_o bishop_n shall_v use_v the_o imperial_a law_n for_o the_o cause_n only_o of_o temporal_a thing_n and_o s._n bernard_n 6._o bern._n li._n 2._o de_fw-la consid_fw-la ca._n 6._o nam_fw-la quid_fw-la tibi_fw-la aliud_fw-la dimisit_fw-la sanctus_n apostolus_fw-la quod_fw-la habeo_fw-la inquit_fw-la tibi_fw-la do_v etc._n etc._n what_o other_o thing_n do_v the_o holy_a apostle_n leave_v unto_o thou_o what_o i_o have_v say_v he_o i_o give_v thou_o what_o be_v that_o one_o thing_n i_o know_v it_o be_v neither_o gold_n nor_o silver_n see_v that_o he_o say_v gold_n and_o silver_n be_v not_o with_o i_o be_v it_o that_o by_o some_o other_o way_n thou_o may_v challenge_v this_o unto_o thou_o yet_o not_o by_o apostolical_a right_n for_o he_o can_v not_o give_v thou_o that_o which_o he_o have_v not_o what_o he_o have_v he_o give_v solicitude_n as_o he_o say_v over_o the_o church_n do_v be_v give_v thou_o rule_v and_o domination_n not_o overruling_a the_o clergy_n but_o make_v example_n of_o the_o flock_n and_o do_v thou_o think_v this_o to_o be_v speak_v only_o out_o of_o humility_n not_o in_o verity_n the_o voice_n of_o our_o lord_n be_v in_o the_o gospel_n the_o prince_n of_o the_o gentile_n over-rule_v they_o etc._n etc._n but_o it_o shall_v not_o be_v so_o among_o you_o 5._o but_o although_o the_o pope_n and_o chief_a pastor_n of_o the_o church_n have_v no_o direct_a temporal_a power_n but_o only_o in_o his_o own_o temporal_a patrimony_n and_o kingdom_n by_o which_o he_o may_v dispose_v of_o kingdom_n crown_n and_o sceptre_n yet_o he_o have_v a_o spiritual_a power_n which_o may_v direct_o and_o ordinary_o dispose_v of_o spiritual_a matter_n and_o indirect_o and_o in_o some_o extraordinary_a case_n of_o the_o temporal_a also_o that_o be_v when_o it_o shall_v be_v judge_v necessary_a for_o the_o consernation_n of_o the_o faith_n or_o religion_n or_o the_o church_n law_n and_o right_a or_o some_o other_o great_a and_o necessary_a good_a i_o say_v the_o pope_n have_v no_o direct_a power_n over_o prince_n for_o than_o he_o may_v limit_v their_o power_n abrogate_v their_o law_n and_o depose_v their_o person_n at_o least_o for_o some_o just_a cause_n though_o it_o do_v not_o concern_v either_o faith_n or_o the_o church_n right_a or_o necessary_a good_a as_o the_o king_n can_v deal_v with_o his_o viceroy_n and_o any_o of_o his_o subject_n and_o then_o prince_n shall_v not_o be_v absolute_a and_o independent_a who_o yet_o as_o above_o be_v declare_v in_o temporal_a matter_n and_o so_o long_o as_o they_o exceed_v not_o the_o bound_n of_o their_o authority_n by_o command_a thing_n contrary_a to_o god_n law_n or_o the_o church_n canon_n acknowledge_v no_o superior_a in_o earth_n neither_o pope_n nor_o emperor_n nor_o common_a wealth_n for_o as_o for_o the_o emperor_n all_o prince_n who_o be_v not_o his_o vassal_n as_o the_o king_n of_o spain_n england_n and_o france_n be_v not_o as_o they_o acknowledge_v he_o superior_a in_o dignity_n and_o therefore_o will_v and_o must_v give_v he_o the_o precedence_n whersoever_o they_o meet_v yet_o they_o be_v not_o subject_a to_o he_o nor_o bind_v to_o obey_v he_o unless_o it_o be_v when_o the_o pope_n the_o chief_a pastor_n and_o he_o the_o great_a prince_n in_o dignity_n shall_v think_v it_o necessary_a that_o all_o christian_a prince_n contribute_v or_o concur_v for_o the_o defence_n of_o christendom_n against_o the_o turk_n or_o such_o like_a common_a enemy_n as_o for_o the_o pope_n i_o grant_v that_o christ_n give_v he_o no_o temporal_a power_n at_o all_o which_o above_o i_o have_v prove_v for_o that_o temporal_a power_n which_o he_o have_v in_o italy_n he_o have_v not_o by_o christ_n immediate_a grant_n but_o only_o by_o constantine_n and_o other_o emperouts_n and_o prince_n donation_n which_o donation_n suppose_v and_o confirm_v also_o by_o prescription_n and_o his_o subject_n yea_o all_o the_o christian_a world_n consent_n that_o part_n of_o italy_n which_o he_o possess_v be_v as_o true_o appertain_v to_o he_o as_o england_n be_v to_o the_o king_n of_o england_n france_n to_o the_o king_n of_o france_n and_o spain_n to_o the_o king_n of_o spain_n only_o the_o pope_n can_v transfer_v his_o kingdom_n to_o his_o heir_n as_o they_o may_v because_o it_o come_v not_o to_o he_o in_o particular_a by_o hereditary_a succession_n but_o only_o by_o election_n yea_o if_o the_o pope_n be_v by_o the_o law_n of_o god_n a_o temporal_a sovereign_n prince_n over_o all_o the_o world_n other_o prince_n shall_v hold_v of_o he_o and_o constantine_n donation_n by_o which_o he_o make_v he_o temporal_a prince_n of_o italy_n have_v be_v no_o donation_n but_o restitution_n as_o for_o the_o common_a wealth_n i_o have_v above_o declare_v how_o it_o have_v despoil_v itself_o of_o all_o authority_n and_o by_o translate_n it_o to_o the_o king_n be_v true_o a_o subject_n and_o like_o a_o private_a person_n and_o so_o have_v no_o power_n over_o the_o king_n unless_o it_o be_v in_o case_n of_o intolerable_a tyranny_n as_o above_o be_v explicate_v 6._o i_o say_v yet_o that_o the_o pope_n have_v a_o indirect_a power_n over_o king_n even_o in_o temporal_a mattter_n which_o power_n notwithstanding_o be_v not_o temporal_a but_o spiritual_a nor_o any_o distinct_a power_n from_o his_o spiritual_a supremacy_n but_o even_o the_o self_n same_o and_o therefore_o gregory_n the_o seven_o in_o his_o deposition_n of_o henry_n the_o four_o say_v that_o he_o depose_v he_o by_o the_o power_n he_o have_v from_o s._n peter_n of_o bind_v and_o lose_v and_o although_o his_o pastoral_n and_o spiritual_a power_n direct_o and_o ordinary_o have_v the_o menage_n only_o of_o spiritual_a matter_n and_o so_o direct_o and_o ordinary_o exercise_v itself_o in_o excommunicate_v interdict_v and_o suspend_v from_o spiritual_a office_n call_v counsel_n and_o decide_v controversy_n of_o faith_n in_o they_o in_o make_v
to_o my_o sovereign_n speak_v no_o more_o of_o he_o then_o any_o other_o prince_n but_z abstract_v from_o all_o prince_n fact_n and_o case_n in_o particular_a i_o intend_v only_o to_o dispute_v as_o i_o have_v hitherto_o of_o the_o pope_n right_a and_o authority_n over_o prince_n in_o general_n the_o first_o clause_n of_o the_o oath_n i._o a._n b._n do_v true_o and_o sincere_o acknowledge_v profess_v and_o testify_v in_o my_o conscience_n before_o god_n and_o the_o world_n that_o our_o sovereign_a lord_n king_n james_n be_v lawful_a and_o true_a king_n of_o this_o realm_n and_o of_o all_o other_o his_o majesty_n dominion_n and_o country_n 12._o i_o will_v not_o stand_v much_o with_o widdrington_n about_o this_o clause_n because_o all_o catholic_n will_v acknowledge_v his_o majesty_n that_o now_o be_v for_o their_o prince_n and_o king_n and_o will_v swear_v also_o fidelity_n unto_o he_o in_o all_o temporal_a matter_n and_o this_o oath_n have_v be_v offer_v by_o the_o catholic_n in_o a_o epistle_n they_o write_v to_o his_o majesty_n which_o other_o also_o have_v offer_v and_o for_o better_a notice_n and_o in_o argument_n of_o their_o true_a meaning_n publish_v their_o offer_n in_o print_n this_o then_o be_v one_o reason_n which_o make_v catholic_n to_o suspect_v that_o in_o this_o oath_n covertlie_o be_v intend_v a_o denial_n of_o the_o pope_n spiritual_a supremacy_n for_o if_o the_o prince_n and_o his_o magistrate_n intend_v only_o civil_a and_o temporal_a allegiance_n why_o do_v they_o not_o propose_v this_o oath_n in_o the_o ordinary_a tenor_n and_o term_n of_o a_o civil_a oath_n with_o which_o the_o former_a king_n of_o england_n and_o all_o catholic_n king_n of_o other_o country_n even_o to_o this_o day_n content_v themselves_o why_o bring_v they_o in_o the_o pope_n authority_n which_o other_o prince_n leave_v out_o but_o they_o know_v that_o catholic_n will_v never_o have_v refuse_v such_o a_o oath_n and_o therefore_o to_o trouble_v and_o engage_v their_o conscience_n to_o have_v thereby_o some_o pretence_n to_o seize_v upon_o their_o live_n and_o good_n and_o to_o vex_v their_o person_n they_o devise_v this_o oath_n which_o their_o manner_n of_o proceed_v may_v make_v catholic_n justly_o suspect_v that_o some_o thing_n be_v intend_v to_o which_o in_o conscience_n they_o can_v agree_v and_o consequent_o oath_n conscience_n and_o religion_n be_v so_o nice_a and_o dangerous_a matter_n if_o there_o be_v no_o other_o reason_n then_o this_o 37._o in_o his_o newyearesguift_n numb_a 8._o pag._n 37._o the_o catholic_n have_v just_a cause_n to_o make_v not_o only_o a_o scruple_n but_o also_o a_o conscience_n to_o take_v it_o and_o therefore_o widdrington_n himself_o in_o his_o newyeares-guist_a confess_v at_o least_o that_o in_o the_o beginning_n and_o why_o not_o still_o catholic_n may_v justly_o suspect_v this_o oath_n to_o be_v unlawful_a 13._o gretzerus_n suarez_n &_o gretzerus_n hence_o it_o be_v also_o that_o some_o writer_n make_v a_o scruple_n of_o those_o word_n supremus_fw-la dominus_fw-la sovereign_a lord_n because_o the_o oath_n be_v of_o itself_o suspicious_a and_o the_o king_n of_o england_n by_o his_o ordinary_a title_n give_v he_o by_o parliament_n be_v style_v supreme_a head_n of_o the_o church_n which_o dignity_n the_o bishop_n and_o divine_n of_o england_n affirm_v to_o be_v annex_v to_o the_o king_n regality_n jure_fw-la divino_fw-la as_o we_o have_v see_v above_o chap._n 6._o they_o fear_v lest_o a_o snake_n lie_v hide_v in_o the_o grass_n and_o a_o pad_n in_o the_o straw_n and_o that_o under_o that_o title_n of_o supreme_a or_o sovereign_a lord_n be_v covertlie_o understand_v supreme_a head_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n not_o only_o in_o temporal_a but_o also_o in_o spiritual_a cause_n but_o because_o these_o word_n sovereign_a lord_n may_v be_v take_v in_o that_o good_a sense_n which_o ordinary_o they_o import_v and_o be_v not_o put_v ex_fw-la parte_fw-la praedicati_fw-la but_o only_o ex_fw-la parte_fw-la subiecti_fw-la for_o by_o this_o clause_n the_o swearer_n swear_v not_o that_o his_o majesty_n be_v supreme_a or_o sovereign_a lord_n but_o only_o that_o our_o sovereign_a lord_n be_v true_a and_o lawful_a king_n i_o will_v not_o much_o stand_n about_o they_o 14._o for_o as_o if_o one_o shall_v swear_v that_o the_o archbishop_n of_o cantetburie_n be_v true_o a_o persecutor_n of_o catholic_n he_o shall_v not_o swear_v that_o he_o be_v true_o archbishop_n but_o only_o that_o he_o who_o be_v call_v archbishop_n of_o canterbury_n be_v true_o a_o persecutor_n so_o by_o swear_v that_o our_o supreme_a lord_n king_n james_n be_v true_a and_o lawful_a king_n we_o do_v not_o swear_v that_o he_o be_v sovereign_a or_o supreme_a lord_n but_o only_o that_o he_o who_o be_v so_o style_v be_v our_o prince_n and_o king_n which_o not_o english_a catholic_a will_n refuse_v to_o swear_v but_o howsoever_o catholic_n have_v good_a cause_n to_o suspect_v all_o thing_n in_o this_o unwonted_a oath_n it_o be_v not_o the_o ordinary_a oath_n of_o allegiance_n which_o the_o king_n in_o other_o country_n propose_n and_o wherewith_o the_o king_n of_o england_n content_v themselves_o till_o they_o begin_v to_o sever_v themselves_o from_o the_o true_a catholic_a roman_n church_n for_o true_a catholic_a and_o roman_a ever_o go_v together_o and_o to_o banish_v out_o of_o their_o realm_n all_o papal_a authority_n as_o a_o enemy_n to_o their_o state_n which_o other_o prince_n do_v retain_v and_o ever_o have_v reverence_v and_o maintain_v as_o the_o chief_a support_n of_o their_o kingdom_n and_o that_o which_o augment_v the_o suspicion_n be_v for_o that_o his_o majesty_n himself_o seem_v to_o make_v doubt_n of_o this_o oath_n and_o so_o it_o seem_v dangerous_a either_o for_o the_o magistrate_n to_o propose_v it_o or_o the_o subject_n to_o receive_v it_o for_o these_o be_v his_o majesty_n word_n utter_v in_o the_o parliament_n a_fw-mi 1606._o some_o doubt_n have_v be_v conceive_v in_o use_v the_o oath_n of_o allegiance_n and_o that_o part_n of_o the_o act_n which_o ordain_v the_o take_v thereof_o be_v think_v so_o absurd_a as_o no_o man_n can_v tell_v who_o ought_v to_o be_v press_v therewith_o for_o i_o myself_o when_o upon_o a_o time_n i_o call_v the_o judge_n before_o i_o at_o their_o go_v to_o their_o court_n move_v the_o question_n unto_o they_o wherein_o as_o i_o think_v they_o can_v not_o reasonable_o auswer_v so_o that_o this_o obscurity_n in_o the_o oath_n shall_v first_o be_v clear_v lest_o swear_v to_o that_o which_o we_o understand_v not_o we_o expose_v ourselves_o to_o perjury_n the_o second_o clause_n and_o that_o the_o pope_n neither_o by_o himself_o nor_o by_o any_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n or_o sea_n of_o rome_n or_o by_o any_o other_o mean_n with_o any_o other_o have_v any_o power_n or_o authority_n to_o depose_v the_o king_n or_o to_o dispose_v of_o any_o of_o his_o majesty_n kingdom_n or_o dominion_n or_o to_o authorise_v any_o foreign_a prince_n to_o annoy_v he_o or_o invade_v his_o country_n or_o to_o discharge_v any_o of_o his_o subject_n of_o their_o allegiance_n and_o obedience_n to_o his_o majesty_n or_o to_o give_v licence_n or_o leave_v to_o any_o of_o they_o to_o bear_v arm_n raise_v tumult_n or_o to_o offer_v any_o violence_n or_o hurt_v to_o his_o majesty_n royal_a person_n state_n or_o government_n or_o to_o any_o of_o his_o majesty_n subject_n within_o his_o majesty_n dominion_n 15._o clausulae_fw-la widdr._n in_o disp_n theol._n in_o exam_n huius_fw-la clausulae_fw-la this_o clause_n say_v widdrington_n be_v petra_n illa_fw-la scandali_fw-la &_o lapis_fw-la offensionis_fw-la that_o rock_n of_o scandal_n and_o stone_n of_o offence_n at_o which_o so_o many_o of_o this_o age_n as_o well_o learned_a as_o unlearned_a have_v stumble_v and_o in_o deed_n to_o widdrington_n himself_o it_o have_v be_v such_o a_o rock_n of_o scandal_n but_o by_o his_o own_o fault_n for_o many_o have_v pass_v it_o with_o out_o either_o fall_v or_o stumble_v that_o he_o have_v not_o only_o stumble_v and_o fall_v at_o it_o himself_o but_o by_o his_o fall_n he_o have_v be_v the_o cause_n of_o the_o fall_n and_o ruin_n of_o many_o a_o hundred_o for_o if_o 22._o august_n serm_n 14._o de_fw-la sanctis_fw-la act._n 7._o &_o 22._o as_o s._n augustin_n say_v s._n paul_n by_o hold_v the_o garment_n of_o those_o that_o stone_a s._n steven_n do_v more_o stone_n he_o then_o any_o of_o the_o stoner_n themselves_o magis_fw-la saeviens_fw-la omnes_fw-la adiwaudo_fw-la quàm_fw-la suis_fw-la manibus_fw-la lapidando_fw-la certes_o widdrington_n persuade_v by_o his_o book_n that_o the_o oath_n be_v lawful_a sin_v more_o damnable_o than_o any_o one_o of_o they_o that_o take_v the_o oath_n yea_o take_v it_o in_o every_o one_o of_o they_o and_o stumble_v and_o fall_v in_o they_o all_o and_o consequent_o more_o than_o they_o all_o but_o vae_fw-la homini_fw-la illi_fw-la
that_o hate_v this_o i_o be_o sure_a i_o give_v you_o no_o other_o counsel_n than_o i_o will_v follow_v myself_o who_o have_v that_o opinion_n of_o the_o unlawfulness_n of_o this_o oath_n that_o i_o will_v loose_v live_n liberty_n and_o life_n rather_o than_o take_v it_o not_o that_o i_o will_v not_o give_v that_o to_o caesar_n which_o be_v due_a to_o caesar_n but_o that_o i_o will_v not_o take_v from_o god_n which_o appertain_v to_o god_n not_o that_o i_o neglect_v a_o temporal_a life_n and_o state_n but_o that_o i_o prefer_v the_o spiritual_a not_o that_o i_o despise_v the_o prince_n to_o who_o i_o acknowledge_v all_o tempor_n all_o obedience_n and_o honour_n but_o that_o i_o honour_v the_o pastor_n who_o have_v the_o rule_n of_o my_o soul_n not_o that_o i_o regard_v not_o the_o common_a wealth_n but_o that_o i_o desire_v to_o live_v and_o die_v a_o obedient_a son_n of_o the_o church_n not_o that_o i_o fear_v not_o they_o who_o can_v kill_v the_o body_n but_o that_o i_o fear_v god_n more_o who_o can_v kill_v the_o soul_n matt._n 10._o 23._o and_o my_o intention_n and_o project_n i_o protest_v of_o dedicate_a this_o treatise_n unto_o you_o be_v not_o to_o irritate_fw-la any_o prince_n but_o only_o to_o declare_v his_o authority_n and_o office_n not_o to_o flatter_v any_o prelate_n but_o only_o to_o defend_v his_o right_n not_o to_o increase_v your_o persecution_n but_o to_o rid_v you_o of_o this_o anathema_n which_o have_v prolong_v it_o not_o to_o add_v affliction_n to_o affliction_n but_o courage_n to_o your_o faint_a and_o comfort_n to_o your_o grief_n to_o help_v they_o to_o rise_v that_o be_v sallen_v and_o to_o confirm_v they_o that_o stand_v that_o they_o may_v the_o better_o keep_v their_o stand_n and_o this_o be_v my_o sincere_a intention_n i_o hope_v not_o only_o you_o but_o all_o other_o who_o shall_v peruse_v this_o book_n will_v make_v their_o profit_n of_o it_o and_o interpret_v it_o in_o that_o good_a meaning_n which_o the_o author_n intend_v our_o lord_n jesus_n for_o who_o cause_n you_o endure_v either_o ease_n you_o of_o this_o burden_n of_o adversity_n under_o which_o you_o groan_v or_o give_v you_o strength_n to_o bear_v it_o comfort_n in_o bear_v and_o make_v i_o a_o follower_n of_o your_o rare_a example_n a_o imitator_n of_o your_o patience_n and_o partaker_n of_o your_o merit_n as_o you_o shall_v ever_o be_v of_o my_o poor_a prayer_n and_o small_a labour_n a_o preface_n to_o the_o reader_n gentle_a reader_n i_o do_v not_o think_v to_o have_v set_v out_o this_o little_a book_n the_o second_o time_n much_o less_o do_v i_o intend_v to_o add_v any_o thing_n unto_o it_o and_o although_o widdrington_n in_o his_o new-year_n gift_n have_v of_o late_a here_o and_o there_o glance_v against_o some_o word_n and_o speech_n of_o i_o where_o he_o imagine_v most_o advantage_n yet_o i_o think_v as_o i_o see_v other_o learned_a writer_n have_v do_v to_o have_v quite_o give_v he_o over_o and_o not_o to_o have_v make_v the_o least_o reply_n as_o not_o be_v desirous_a to_o contend_v with_o such_o as_o be_v resolve_v not_o to_o yield_v have_v other_o business_n to_o many_o where_o with_o to_o occupy_v myself_o but_o the_o printer_n who_o first_o take_v this_o book_n in_o hand_n and_o other_o friend_n also_o importune_v i_o to_o let_v it_o come_v forth_o again_o and_o allege_v that_o the_o copy_n of_o the_o first_o edition_n be_v all_o spend_v and_o yet_o more_o demand_v i_o be_v content_a volens_fw-la nolens_fw-la yield_v herein_o more_o to_o importunity_n then_o to_o my_o own_o inclination_n to_o publish_v it_o once_o more_o and_o upon_o this_o occasion_n of_o this_o new_a edition_n to_o add_v here_o and_o there_o something_o either_o for_o a_o more_o ample_a explication_n or_o for_o answer_v to_o widdringtons_n objection_n i_o be_v willing_a i_o confess_v and_o forward_o enough_o the_o first_o time_n to_o write_v of_o this_o subject_n for_o although_o as_o by_o a_o accident_n i_o be_v one_o of_o the_o last_o who_o write_v in_o the_o defence_n of_o this_o the_o chief_a visible_a pastors_n authority_n now_o in_o england_n impugn_a so_o i_o count_v myself_o among_o the_o least_o yet_o as_o when_o a_o house_n be_v set_v on_o fire_n some_o carry_v water_n other_o ladders_z and_o every_o one_o repair_v thither_o to_o show_v at_o least_o his_o good_a will_n to_o extinguish_v it_o so_o in_o this_o combustion_n in_o which_o not_o only_o heretic_n but_o also_o some_o of_o they_o who_o make_v profession_n of_o the_o catholic_a name_n do_v endevoure_n to_o put_v fire_n even_o to_o the_o secundarie_n foundation_n of_o god_n his_o church_n to_o wit_n the_o chief_a vifible_a pastors_n authority_n i_o think_v it_o the_o part_n of_o every_o zealous_a catholic_a to_o run_n to_o the_o extinguish_n of_o this_o fire_n for_o though_o all_o have_v not_o the_o like_a dexterity_n yet_o all_o may_v show_v the_o like_a good_a will_n which_o i_o have_v perform_v in_o the_o former_a edition_n of_o this_o little_a book_n according_a to_o my_o ability_n i_o think_v to_o have_v surcease_v have_v not_o importunity_n of_o friend_n overcome_v i_o and_o therefore_o after_o this_o as_o i_o mean_v not_o to_o dispute_v any_o more_o of_o this_o point_n with_o they_o with_o who_o as_o i_o gather_v by_o the_o repulse_n which_o great_a man_n than_o myself_o have_v receive_v there_o be_v little_a hope_n to_o prevail_v so_o i_o wish_v all_o catholic_n see_v that_o they_o have_v hear_v their_o chief_a visible_a pastors_n sentence_n to_o leave_v of_o all_o disputation_n touch_v this_o his_o authority_n and_o simple_o and_o humble_o to_o obey_v his_o commandment_n and_o consequent_o to_o acknowledge_v the_o say_a authority_n to_o refuse_v the_o oath_n by_o he_o condemn_v and_o yet_o to_o obey_v the_o king_n our_o sovereign_n and_o liege_n lord_n in_o all_o civil_a and_o temporal_a cause_n to_o be_v faithful_a to_o he_o and_o his_o royal_a posterity_n and_o to_o pray_v day_n lie_v for_o his_o majesty_n long_a and_o prosperous_a life_n that_o he_o may_v live_v long_o to_o we_o always_o to_o god_n and_o so_o reign_v long_o in_o the_o kingdom_n of_o england_n as_o he_o may_v reign_v for_o ever_o in_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n the_o content_n of_o the_o chapter_n by_o way_n of_o introduction_n it_o be_v show_v that_o there_o be_v two_o power_n in_o the_o church_n the_o one_o civil_a the_o other_o ecclesiastical_a which_o be_v both_o necessary_a chap._n 1._o some_o civil_a power_n follow_v immediate_o from_o god_n and_o nature_n regal_a power_n proceed_v immediate_o from_o the_o people_n election_n and_o donation_n mediate_o from_o god_n ordination_n so_o that_o after_o the_o election_n of_o the_o people_n and_o reception_n the_o king_n be_v superior_a who_o may_v command_v and_o bind_v in_o conscience_n the_o people_n be_v subject_n bind_v to_o obey_v chap._n 2._o ecclesiastical_a power_n be_v also_o of_o god_n and_o be_v distinct_a from_o the_o civil_a jurisdiction_n which_o also_o all_o member_n of_o the_o church_n be_v bind_v in_o conscience_n to_o obey_v chap._n 3._o these_o two_o jurisdiction_n and_o power_n ecclesiastical_a and_o civil_a be_v compare_v and_o confer_v and_o the_o preeminence_n be_v give_v to_o the_o ecclesiastical_a chap._n 4._o ecclesiastical_a and_o temporal_a peer_n and_o prince_n be_v compare_v together_o and_o out_o of_o the_o comparison_n be_v gather_v that_o not_o only_o private_a layman_n but_o even_o temporal_a prince_n though_o otherwise_o absolute_a be_v subject_a to_o the_o pastor_n of_o the_o church_n and_o especial_o to_o the_o supreme_a visible_a pastor_n as_o be_v prove_v by_o many_o argument_n chap._n 5._o that_o prince_n king_n yea_o emperor_n have_v no_o authority_n to_o govern_v the_o church_n or_o to_o make_v ecclesiastical_a law_n neither_o be_v to_o be_v account_v head_n or_o superior_n but_o subject_n of_o the_o church_n though_o protector_n and_o defendour_n and_o therefore_o be_v modest_o admonish_v of_o their_o duty_n and_o office_n chap._n 6._o although_o the_o pope_n be_v not_o direct_v temporal_a lord_n and_o superior_a of_o the_o world_n nor_o of_o any_o part_n thereof_o by_o christ_n express_a gift_n and_o donation_n but_o only_o of_o the_o patrimony_n of_o saint_n peter_n give_v he_o by_o constantine_n the_o great_a and_o other_o catholic_a prince_n and_o confirm_v by_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o christian_a world_n yet_o by_o the_o spiritual_a power_n which_o christ_n give_v he_o in_o his_o predecessor_n s._n peter_n 10.21_o he_o may_v dispose_v of_o temporal_a thing_n and_o even_o of_o kingdom_n for_o the_o good_a of_o the_o church_n and_o conservation_n of_o she_o and_o her_o faith_n &_o right_n and_o the_o manner_n how_o and_o in_o what_o case_n he_o can_v thus_o dispose_v of_o temporality_n be_v explicate_v chap._n 7._o by_o diverse_a place_n and_o
and_o if_o this_o limitation_n proceed_v from_o the_o king_n he_o may_v at_o his_o pleasure_n also_o take_v it_o away_o which_o be_v to_o give_v prince_n too_o much_o scope_n and_o liberty_n wherefore_o as_o the_o people_n give_v the_o king_n his_o authority_n so_o it_o be_v the_o people_n that_o thus_o limit_v and_o restrain_v he_o for_o their_o own_o preservation_n for_o to_o the_o same_o authority_n that_o give_v power_n it_o pertain_v to_o restrain_v it_o 16._o have_v thus_o prove_v that_o the_o king_n or_o prince_n have_v authority_n from_o god_n as_o author_n of_o nature_n yet_o by_o mean_n of_o the_o people_n election_n and_o grant_v to_o govern_v the_o kingdom_n or_o common_a wealth_n it_o follow_v that_o he_o have_v authority_n not_o only_o to_o command_v privarelie_o or_o particulerlie_o as_o the_o goodman_n of_o the_o house_n may_v command_v his_o wife_n child_n or_o servant_n but_o also_o to_o make_v law_n which_o shall_v bind_v the_o whole_a community_n or_o common_a wealth_n otherwise_o if_o he_o shall_v command_v and_o the_o people_n may_v disobey_v he_o can_v not_o rule_v nor_o direct_v the_o people_n and_o so_o shall_v not_o have_v sufficient_a authority_n 17._o by_o which_o may_v appear_v how_o absurd_a the_o opinion_n of_o our_o reformer_n be_v 10._o luth_n l._n the_o cap_a bab._n calu._n l._n 3_o inst_z c._n 19_o n._n 14_o &_o l._n 4._o c._n 10._o and_o how_o injurious_a to_o prince_n yea_o and_o to_o god_n that_o appoint_v they_o who_o blush_v not_o to_o say_v and_o avouch_v that_o all_o christian_n that_o be_v caluinist_n endue_v with_o faith_n be_v so_o free_v by_o christ_n from_o all_o law_n and_o humane_a power_n that_o they_o can_v not_o bind_v they_o in_o conscience_n 18._o certes_o luther_n in_o his_o book_n of_o babylonical_a captivity_n and_o caluin_n in_o his_o institution_n make_v it_o a_o part_n of_o the_o office_n of_o a_o redeemer_n in_o christ_n to_o have_v so_o free_v we_o from_o all_o humane_a authority_n and_o law_n that_o they_o can_v not_o bind_v we_o in_o conscience_n and_o the_o anabaptist_n and_o trinitarian_n who_o a_o 155●_n at_o alba-iulia_n set_v forth_o certain_a antithesis_n of_o the_o true_a and_o false_a christ_n in_o their_o seven_o antithesis_fw-la affirm_v that_o falsus_fw-la christus_fw-la habet_fw-la in_o suâ_fw-la ecclesiâ_fw-la reges_fw-la principes_fw-la magistratus_fw-la gladios_fw-la at_o verus_fw-la christus_fw-la nihil_fw-la tale_n in_fw-la ecclesiâ_fw-la pati_fw-la potest_fw-la the_o false_a christ_n have_v in_o his_o church_n king_n prince_n magistrate_n sword_n but_o the_o true_a christ_n can_v abide_v no_o such_o thing_n in_o his_o church_n but_o this_o opinion_n may_v be_v evidentlie_o convince_v by_o that_o which_o be_v say_v for_o if_o prince_n have_v power_n from_o god_n and_o nature_n to_o rule_v they_o have_v power_n to_o make_v law_n and_o if_o they_o can_v make_v law_n they_o can_v bind_v in_o conscience_n else_o their_o law_n be_v straw_n and_o to_o little_a purpose_n especial_o when_o the_o subject_n can_v avoid_v by_o slight_a the_o penalty_n of_o the_o law_n wherefore_o saint_n paul_n command_v we_o to_o be_v subject_a to_o all_o lawful_a humane_a authority_n non_fw-la tantum_fw-la propter_fw-la iram_fw-la sed_fw-la etiam_fw-la propter_fw-la conscientiam_fw-la not_o only_o for_o wrath_n but_o also_o for_o conscience_n sake_n 13._o rom._n 13._o and_o he_o add_v that_o he_o that_o resist_v this_o power_n which_o be_v of_o god_n dei_fw-la ordinationi_fw-la resistit_fw-la qui_fw-la autem_fw-la resistunt_fw-la ipsi_fw-la sibi_fw-la damnationem_fw-la acquirunt_fw-la resist_v the_o ordinance_n of_o god_n and_o they_o that_o resist_v purchase_v to_o themselves_o damnation_n which_o argue_v a_o obligation_n in_o conscience_n again_o the_o same_o apostle_n command_v titus_n to_o admonish_v christian_n to_o be_v subject_a to_o prince_n and_o potesta●es_n 3._o ad_fw-la tit._n 3._o 2._o 1._o pot._n 2._o saint_n peter_n command_v they_o to_o be_v subject_a to_o every_o humane_a creature_n for_o god_n whether_o it_o be_v king_n as_o excel_v &c._n &c._n and_o he_o give_v the_o reason_n say_v for_o so_o be_v the_o will_n of_o god_n by_o which_o it_o be_v manifest_a that_o we_o be_v bind_v under_o sin_n &_o under_o god_n his_o displeasure_n to_o honour_n and_o obey_v king_n and_o prince_n and_o consequent_o that_o we_o be_v bind_v in_o conscience_n 19_o let_v not_o then_o our_o reformer_n traduce_v catholic_n as_o enemy_n to_o princely_a authority_n and_o idolator_n of_o the_o pope_n power_n for_o we_o acknowledge_v and_o reverence_v they_o both_o high_o in_o their_o kind_n but_o let_v the_o reformer_n look_v to_o themselves_o plautus_n plautus_n because_o qui_fw-la alterum_fw-la incusat_fw-la probri_fw-la ipsum_fw-la se_fw-la intueri_fw-la oportet_fw-la he_o that_o accuse_v another_o must_v look_v that_o he_o himself_o be_v free_a 12._o joseph_n l._n 18._o ant._n c._n 2._o aug._n l._n 3._o côt_fw-fr cros_n c._n 15._o exira_n de_fw-fr haeret_fw-la c._n 4_o anton._n 4._o p._n tit_n 11._o ca._n 7._o §_o 9_o luth._o l._n de_fw-la saecul_fw-la pete_a trinita_n aij_fw-la supra_fw-la buchan_n li._n de_fw-fr jure_fw-la regni_fw-la goodman_n l._n de_fw-fr obedien_fw-mi pag._n 203._o beza_n ep_v 78._o ad_fw-la buchanan_n luth._o supra_fw-la caluin_n l._n 4._o inst_z c._n 19_o §._o 14._o exod._n 12._o we_o catholic_n say_v not_o with_o judas_n galilaeus_fw-la that_o no_o prince_n be_v to_o be_v obey_v nor_o with_o cresconius_n that_o the_o magistrate_n ought_v not_o to_o punish_v nor_o with_o the_o beguard_n that_o the_o perfect_a be_v not_o bind_v to_o obey_v law_n nor_o with_o wickleph_n that_o the_o prince_n by_o mortal_a sin_n lose_v his_o authority_n nor_o with_o luther_n that_o the_o turk_n be_v decies_fw-la probior_fw-la prudentiorque_fw-la nostris_fw-la principibus_fw-la ten_o time_n honest_a and_o wise_a than_o our_o prince_n nor_o with_o the_o aforesaid_a trinitarian_n anabaptist_n and_o libertine_n that_o the_o true_a christ_n suffer_v no_o prince_n nor_o magistrate_n in_o his_o church_n nor_o with_o buchanan_n that_o the_o people_n only_o be_v to_o make_v law_n reges_fw-la sunt_fw-la veluti_fw-la tabulaeriorum_n custodes_fw-la nor_o with_o goodman_n that_o woman_n can_v reign_v and_o that_o therefore_o wyatt_n rise_v against_o queen_n marie_n be_v no_o traitor_n nor_o with_o beza_n do_v we_o call_v that_o lawful_a and_o worthy_a queen_n marie_n the_o mother_n of_o our_o sovereign_a king_n james_n medea_n and_o athalia_fw-la as_o though_o as_o he_o say_v nullum_fw-la illius_fw-la sceleribus_fw-la nomen_fw-la idoneum_fw-la inveniri_fw-la posset_n no_o name_n answerable_a to_o her_o wickedness_n can_v be_v find_v out_o nor_o with_o luther_n and_o caluin_n that_o prince_n law_n bind_v not_o the_o faithful_a in_o conscience_n but_o we_o say_v and_o believe_v with_o scripture_n thou_o shall_v not_o detract_v from_o the_o god_n that_o be_v prince_n who_o be_v call_v god_n by_o participation_n nor_o speak_v evil_a of_o the_o prince_n of_o thy_o people_n 22._o prou._n 8._o mat._n 22._o we_o confess_v that_o by_o god_n prince_n reign_v we_o command_v to_o give_v to_o caesar_n what_o be_v due_a to_o caesar_n we_o allow_v of_o s._n ignatius_n counsel_n caesari_n subiecti_fw-la estote_fw-la in_o ijs_fw-la antioch_n ign._n epi._n ad_fw-la antioch_n in_fw-la quibus_fw-la nullum_fw-la animae_fw-la periculum_fw-la be_v you_o subject_n to_o caesar_n in_o those_o thing_n in_o which_o be_v no_o danger_n of_o the_o soul_n we_o be_v teach_v to_o give_v to_o magistrate_n as_o s._n 14_o eus_n l._n 4._o hist_o c._n 14_o policarp_n say_v and_o potestates_fw-la appoint_v by_o god_n that_o honour_n which_o be_v not_o prejudicial_a to_o our_o soul_n or_o religion_n we_o worship_v as_o tertullian_n say_v the_o emperor_n 2._o lib._n adversus_fw-la scap._n cap._n 2._o the_o king_n sic_fw-la quomodo_fw-la &_o nobis_fw-la licet_fw-la &_o ipsi_fw-la expedit_fw-la ut_fw-la hominem_fw-la à_fw-la deo_fw-la secundum_fw-la &_o solo_fw-la deo_fw-la minorem_fw-la so_o as_o it_o be_v lawful_a for_o we_o and_o expedient_a for_o he_o as_o a_o man_n second_o in_o temporal_a authority_n to_o god_n and_o only_o lesser_a than_o god_n for_o whilst_o the_o king_n keep_v within_o his_o bound_n he_o have_v no_o superior_a in_o temporal_a matter_n but_o god_n and_o this_o be_v the_o honourable_a conceit_n which_o catholic_n have_v of_o their_o king_n and_o prince_n chapter_n iii_o ecclesiastical_a power_n be_v of_o god_n and_o distinct_a from_o the_o civil_a jurisdiction_n which_o also_o all_o member_n of_o the_o church_n be_v bind_v in_o conscience_n to_o obey_v 1._o have_v give_v to_o caesar_n and_o the_o kingdom_n what_o be_v due_a to_o they_o it_o follow_v that_o i_o give_v to_o christ_n and_o his_o vicaire_n yea_o and_o church_n also_o what_o belong_v to_o they_o i_o have_v prove_v in_o the_o former_a chapter_n that_o civil_a power_n be_v of_o god_n and_o nature_n because_o it_o be_v necessary_o annex_v to_o all_o lawful_a society_n to_o which_o god_n and_o nature_n do_v incline_v
indifferent_a and_o not_o otherwise_o forbid_v fiftlie_o 18._o mat._n 18._o christ_n give_v authority_n to_o his_o apostle_n to_o loose_v and_o bind_v by_o excommunication_n suspension_n and_o interdict_v which_o act_n of_o jurisdiction_n be_v the_o spiritual_a band_n and_o censure_n which_o the_o church_n lay_v upon_o rebellious_a christian_n as_o divine_n and_o father_n interpret_v which_o power_n saint_n paul_n in_o his_o second_o epistle_n to_o the_o corinthian_n insinuate_v say_v if_o i_o come_v again_o i_o will_v not_o spare_v and_o again_o these_o thing_n i_o write_v absent_a that_o be_v present_a i_o may_v not_o deal_v hardly_o according_a to_o the_o power_n which_o our_o lord_n have_v give_v i_o unto_o edification_n and_o not_o unto_o destruction_n 53._o 1._o cor._n 4._o 1._o cor._n 5._o d._n th._n in_o hac_fw-la loca_fw-la gregor_n nyss●in_fw-fr orat_fw-la adversus_fw-la eos_fw-la qui_fw-la agre_fw-la ferunt_fw-la reprehend_v chrysost_n hom_n 60●_n ad_fw-la pop_n ant._n hieron_n ep_v 53._o and_o in_o his_o first_o epistle_n he_o say_v what_o will_v you_o in_o rod_n that_o i_o come_v to_o you_o or_o in_o charity_n and_o the_o spirit_n of_o mildness_n and_o again_o he_o in_o absence_n by_o his_o letter_n and_o mandatum_fw-la excommunicate_v the_o incestuous_a person_n and_o deliver_v he_o up_o to_o satan_n out_o of_o which_o word_n saint_n gregory_n of_o nisse_fw-la and_o saint_n chrysostome_n do_v gather_v the_o power_n of_o excommunication_n as_o also_o do_v saint_n hierom_n who_o marueil_v that_o the_o bishop_n in_o who_o diocese_n vigilantius_n live_v do_v not_o virga_fw-la ferrea_fw-la confringere_fw-la vas_fw-la inutile_fw-la &_o tradere_fw-la in_o interitum_fw-la carnis_fw-la ut_fw-la spiritus_fw-la saluus_fw-la fiat_fw-la with_o a_o iron_n rod_n break_v that_o unprofitable_a vessel_n and_o deliver_v he_o to_o satan_n for_o the_o destruction_n of_o the_o flesh_n that_o the_o spirit_n may_v be_v save_v so_o s._n augustin_n 14._o aug_n l_o 1_o de_fw-fr pen._n cap._n 14._o so_o all_o father_n so_o caluin_n himself_o understand_v this_o place_n of_o the_o power_n of_o excommunication_n though_o caluin_n will_v have_v only_o the_o presbytery_n and_o company_n of_o seniors_n not_o any_o one_o alone_a to_o excommunicate_v contrary_a to_o the_o express_a text_n which_o tell_v we_o that_o saint_n paul_n alone_o absent_a do_v excommunicate_a and_o deliver_v up_o to_o satan_n where_o be_v to_o be_v note_v that_o by_o excommunication_n stubbern_a christian_n be_v say_v to_o be_v deliver_v up_o to_o satan_n either_o because_o they_o be_v cast_v out_o of_o the_o church_n where_o satan_n domineer_v or_o else_o for_o that_o they_o be_v deprive_v of_o the_o suffrage_n and_o help_n of_o the_o church_n and_o so_o more_o expose_v to_o satan_n tentation_n or_o last_o because_o in_o the_o primative_a church_n the_o devil_n by_o and_o by_o seize_v and_o take_v poslession_n of_o the_o person_n excommunicate_v 10._o sixth_o as_o because_o the_o law_n of_o nature_n can_v not_o determine_v particular_o of_o all_o particular_n civil_a power_n be_v necessary_a to_o govern_v the_o community_n and_o enact_v law_n conduce_v to_o the_o temporal_a state_n so_o because_o god_n his_o law_n have_v not_o determine_v all_o particular_n it_o be_v necessary_a the_o church_n shall_v have_v power_n to_o call_v council_n tomake_n patticule_a law_n according_a to_o the_o time_n and_o other_o circumstance_n 11._o seventhlie_a every_o absolute_a common_a wealth_n have_v power_n in_o the_o prince_n and_o magistrate_n to_o govern_v and_o defend_v itself_o to_o make_v law_n to_o punish_v malefactor_n etc._n etc._n but_o the_o church_n be_v a_o absolute_a common_a wealth_n and_o more_o absolute_a than_o a_o kingdom_n this_o be_v subordinate_a to_o that_o not_o that_o to_o this_o ergo_fw-la it_o be_v to_o have_v all_o spiritual_a authority_n necessary_a to_o govern_v and_o defend_v itself_o else_o christ_n have_v not_o sufficient_o provide_v for_o it_o 12._o fightlie_o we_o be_v bind_v to_o obey_v prince_n law_n and_o authority_n in_o conscience_n ergo_fw-la much_o more_o the_o church_n authority_n and_o law_n this_o be_v spiritual_a that_o but_o temporal_a this_o be_v the_o subordinant_n that_o the_o subordinat_a power_n as_o we_o shall_v see_v hereafter_o and_o therefore_o if_o the_o apostle_n will_v have_v every_o soul_n to_o be_v subject_a to_o authority_n and_o high_a power_n 13_o rom._n 13_o he_o will_v especial_o that_o they_o be_v subject_a if_o they_o be_v member_n of_o the_o church_n unto_o her_o spiritual_a power_n for_o as_o symmachus_n pope_n say_v once_o to_o the_o emperor_n anastasius_n si_fw-la omnis_fw-la potestas_fw-la à_fw-la deo_fw-la est_fw-la imp._n ep._n ad_fw-la anastaf_n imp._n magis_fw-la ergo_fw-la quae_fw-la rebus_fw-la praestituta_fw-la est_fw-la divinis_fw-la defer_v deo_n in_o nobis_fw-la &_o nos_fw-la deferemus_fw-la deo_fw-la in_o te_fw-la if_o all_o power_n be_v of_o god_n much_o more_o therefore_o that_o power_n which_o govern_v divine_a matter_n honour_n thou_o god_n o_o emperor_n in_o we_o and_o we_o will_v honour_v he_o in_o thou_o chapter_n four_o these_o two_o jurisdiction_n and_o power_n ecclesiastical_a and_o civil_a be_v compare_v and_o confer_v and_o the_o preeminence_n be_v give_v to_o the_o ecclesiastical_a 1._o as_o the_o little_a world_n man_n call_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d can_v not_o consist_v without_o body_n and_o soul_n nor_o the_o great_a world_n without_o the_o sun_n and_o moon_n so_o neither_o can_v the_o spiritual_a world_n of_o the_o church_n flourish_v any_o time_n unless_o it_o be_v support_v as_o by_o two_o pillar_n by_o the_o spiritual_a and_o temporal_a power_n and_o authority_n but_o as_o if_o the_o moon_n shall_v or_o can_v contend_v with_o the_o sun_n and_o will_v or_o can_v disdain_v to_o receive_v light_n from_o the_o sun_n or_o will_v or_o can_v encroach_v upon_o the_o sun_n right_a in_o the_o governmet_a of_o the_o day_n all_o will_v be_v out_o of_o order_n so_o if_o one_o of_o these_o power_n shall_v be_v at_o variance_n with_o the_o other_o and_o will_v not_o receive_v light_a and_o direction_n by_o the_o more_o lightsome_a or_o will_v encroach_v preposterouslie_o on_o the_o other_o domain_v the_o church_n can_v not_o long_o flourish_v and_o as_o if_o the_o body_n shall_v rebel_v against_o the_o soul_n the_o flesh_n against_o the_o spirit_n sensuality_n against_o reason_n it_o will_v perturb_v reason_n order_n and_o break_v the_o oeconomie_n of_o moral_a life_n so_o if_o one_o of_o these_o power_n shall_v offer_v injury_n to_o the_o other_o the_o mystical_a body_n of_o christ_n his_o church_n will_v be_v out_o of_o frame_n wherefore_o see_v that_o christ_n the_o wisdom_n of_o god_n be_v the_o authout_n of_o both_o he_o no_o doubt_n have_v dispose_v they_o sweet_o 7._o sap._n 7._o and_o consequent_o have_v settle_v some_o order_n betwixt_o they_o because_o quae_fw-la à_fw-la deo_fw-la sunt_fw-la 13._o rom._n 13._o ordinata_fw-la sunt_fw-la those_o thing_n that_o be_v of_o god_n be_v order_v and_o for_o as_o much_o as_o pluralitas_fw-la principatuum_fw-la non_fw-la est_fw-la bona_fw-la plurality_n of_o principality_n be_v not_o good_a ult._n arist_n l._n 12._o metaph._n cap._n ult._n to_o wit_n unless_o one_o be_v subordinate_a to_o the_o other_o no_o doubt_n he_o have_v subject_v one_o of_o these_o to_o the_o other_o for_o which_o cause_n in_o this_o chapter_n i_o will_v endeavour_v to_o show_v which_o of_o these_o power_n take_v the_o precedence_n which_o have_v the_o preeminence_n and_o superiority_n wherein_o and_o how_o far_o 2._o but_o because_o comparison_n betwixt_o so_o great_a power_n and_o principality_n and_o especial_o in_o these_o our_o corrupt_a time_n be_v odious_a i_o protest_v before_o hand_n that_o i_o intend_v not_o do_v detract_v any_o right_a or_o prerogative_n from_o either_o but_o only_o to_o give_v to_o caesar_n and_o his_o temporal_a power_n what_o belong_v unto_o they_o and_o to_o god_n and_o his_o church_n 21._o mat._n 21._o what_o appertain_v to_o they_o for_o i_o confess_v and_o have_v prove_v that_o both_o these_o authority_n be_v of_o god_n both_o be_v excellent_a and_o eminent_a in_o their_o kind_n both_o to_o be_v honour_v both_o to_o be_v obey_v within_o their_o limit_n both_o so_o necessary_a to_o the_o church_n of_o god_n that_o it_o can_v no_o more_o stand_v without_o they_o than_o the_o world_n without_o sun_n and_o moon_n for_o take_v away_o temporal_a power_n and_o who_o shall_v defend_v the_o church_n and_o assist_v she_o for_o the_o execution_n of_o her_o law_n and_o sentence_n take_v away_o the_o spiritual_a power_n and_o who_o shall_v direct_v and_o correct_v the_o temporal_a when_o it_o be_v exorbitant_a take_v away_o the_o temporal_a and_o who_o shall_v draw_v the_o sword_n take_v away_o the_o spiritual_a and_o who_o shall_v preach_v the_o word_n take_v away_o the_o temporal_a and_o who_o shall_v have_v care_n of_o our_o corporal_a and_o temporal_a life_n take_v away_o the_o spiritual_a and_o
by_o a_o invisible_a blow_n reach_v he_o from_o god_n perish_v most_o miserable_o 561._o miserable_o earon_n tom_fw-mi 7._o au_o 561._o bellisarius_fw-la justinian_o general_n over_o his_o army_n to_o who_o he_o be_v so_o dear_a that_o his_o portrait_n be_v print_v in_o the_o one_o side_n of_o justinians_n coin_n with_o this_o title_n bilisarius_n romanorum_fw-la decus_fw-la bellisarius_fw-la the_o glory_n of_o the_o roman_n for_o his_o molestation_n of_o silverius_n to_o grarifie_v thereby_o theodora_n the_o empress_n have_v for_o suspicion_n of_o conspiracy_n against_o justinian_n his_o eye_n pull_v out_o be_v despoil_v of_o all_o his_o dignity_n and_o force_v in_o fine_a to_o beg_v rom._n beg_v cedren_n in_o anna_n paul_n diac._n li._n 20._o rerum_fw-la roman_n baron_fw-fr tom_fw-mi 8._o a_o 713._o anast_n in_o vital_a baro._n a_o 668._o paul_n diac._n lib._n 19_o rerum_fw-la rom._n philippicus_n for_o his_o contempt_n of_o constantine_n pope_n and_o propagate_a of_o heresy_n be_v deprive_v of_o his_o empire_n and_o his_o eye_n also_o f_o constans_n for_o persecute_v theodorus_n pope_n and_o violent_o carry_v away_o pope_n martin_n from_o rome_n be_v slay_v in_o a_o bath_n 2._o bath_n fascie_a temp._n in_o just_o 2._o martin_n pol._n in_o just_o 2._o just●nian_n the_o second_o for_o infringe_v the_o eight_o synod_n and_o molest_v of_o sergius_n pope_n who_o refuse_v to_o consent_v to_o his_o heresy_n be_v deprive_v of_o his_o empire_n and_o beside_o that_o of_o his_o nose_n and_o tongue_n 1080._o tongue_n baron_fw-fr tom_fw-mi 11._o a_o 1080._o henry_n the_o four_o emperor_n excommunicate_v and_o depose_v by_o gregory_n the_o seven_o as_o we_o have_v see_v be_v by_o his_o own_o son_n persecute_v hold_v in_o prison_n and_o at_o length_n make_v a_o miserable_a end_n out_o of_o his_o own_o country_n 1189_o country_n neubr_n li._n 4._o c._n 13_o palmer_n 〈◊〉_d in_o chron_n a_o 1189_o frederick_z the_o first_o be_v drown_v miserable_o in_o a_o river_n of_o armenia_n for_o punishment_n of_o the_o schism_n he_o raise_v against_o alexander_n pope_n as_o our_o neubrigens●s_n record_v 1245_o record_v fascic_fw-la temp._n in_o frider._n 2_o matt_n westm_n a_o 1245_o frederick_z the_o second_o after_o he_o be_v excommunicate_v and_o depose_v by_o innocent_a the_o four_o pope_n of_o that_o name_n be_v strangle_v by_o his_o own_o son_n and_o die_v without_o sacrament_n 8._o sacrament_n geneb_n lib_n 4._o chron._n anno_fw-la 2294._o in_o bonifacio_n 8._o philip_z le_fw-fr bell_n king_n of_o france_n after_o he_o be_v excommunicate_v and_o depose_v by_o boniface_n the_o eight_o never_o prosper_v as_o genebrard_n la_fw-fr french_n man_n write_v and_o after_o that_o bonifacius_n be_v take_v unaware_o by_o the_o deceit_n which_o philip_n use_v a_o holy_a bishop_n say_v the_o king_n be_v glad_a he_o have_v boniface_n pope_n in_o hold_n but_o no_o good_a thereby_o will_v happen_v to_o he_o and_o his_o posterity_n which_o prophecy_n say_v 1315._o say_v genebr_n lib_n 4._o chron._n anno_fw-la 1315._o genebrard_n be_v short_o after_o fulfil_v for_o the_o king_n perish_v by_o reason_n of_o a_o boar_n that_o rush_v betwixt_o his_o horse_n leg_n three_o of_o his_o son_n that_o reign_v after_o he_o die_v one_o after_o another_o in_o a_o short_a space_n their_o queen_n be_v dishonour_v they_o with_o their_o infamous_a adultery_n and_o the_o issue_n of_o philip_n fail_v the_o contention_n betwixt_o our_o edward_z the_o three_o son_n of_o the_o daughter_n of_o philip_n le_fw-fr bel_n and_o philip_n de_fw-fr valois_n the_o son_n of_o charles_n de_fw-fr valois_n philip_n le_fw-fr bel_n his_o brother_n arise_v which_o contention_n cost_v france_n very_o dear_o and_o to_o spare_v our_o time_n as_o god_n threaten_v by_o his_o prophet_n 60._o isai_n 60._o that_o the_o kingdom_n that_o shall_v not_o serve_v the_o church_n shall_v perish_v as_o we_o see_v all_o greece_n be_v lose_v by_o their_o heresy_n and_o schism_n against_o the_o roman_a church_n and_o england_n germany_n and_o holland_n and_o other_o country_n know_v not_o what_o punishment_n hang_v over_o their_o head_n so_o whosoever_o shall_v observe_v the_o course_n of_o time_n and_o history_n shall_v find_v that_o few_o prince_n have_v long_o prosper_v who_o have_v persecute_v the_o roman_a church_n and_o faith_n or_o have_v be_v by_o she_o excommunicate_v or_o depose_v 26._o wherefore_o king_n and_o prince_n that_o contemn_v and_o despise_v the_o church_n remember_v you_o be_v man_n and_o that_o your_o kingdom_n be_v subject_a to_o a_o high_a state_n of_o the_o church_n fear_v her_o glaive_n that_o strike_v even_o the_o soul_n and_o spirit_n and_o if_o you_o will_v reign_v long_o and_o prosperous_o here_o imitate_v those_o constantine_n martian_n theodosius_n pipins_n charles_n the_o great_a lewis_n and_o other_o who_o be_v more_o glorious_a for_o amplify_a the_o church_n immunity_n and_o domain_v then_o for_o extend_v their_o empire_n more_o renown_a for_o the_o church_n and_o monastery_n they_o found_v they_o for_o the_o city_n and_o castle_n they_o build_v who_o by_o obey_v honour_v and_o enrich_v the_o church_n strengtn_v and_o enrich_v their_o kingdom_n and_o have_v prosper_v in_o all_o their_o war_n and_o battle_n but_o i_o will_v end_v with_o s._n bernard_n counsel_n which_o he_o give_v to_o conradus_n king_n of_o the_o roman_n 13._o bern._n ep_v 183._o ad_fw-la conrade_n regem_fw-la romam_fw-la rom._n 13._o desire_v all_o christian_a prince_n to_o follow_v it_o legi_fw-la quip_n omnia_fw-la anima_fw-la potestatibus_fw-la sublimioribus_fw-la subdita_fw-la sit_fw-la etc._n etc._n quam_fw-la tamen_fw-la sententiam_fw-la cupio_fw-la vos_fw-la &_o omnimodis_fw-la moneo_fw-la custodire_fw-la in_o exhibenda_fw-la reverentia_fw-la summae_fw-la &_o apostolicae_fw-la sedi_fw-la i_o have_v read_v indeed_o let_v every_o soul_n be_v subject_a to_o high_a power_n and_o he_o that_o resist_v the_o power_n resist_v the_o ordinance_n of_o god_n which_o sentence_v not_o withstand_v i_o desire_v and_o by_o all_o mean_n warn_v you_o o_o prince_n to_o keep_v by_o exhibit_v reverence_n to_o the_o high_a and_o apostolical_a seat_n chapter_n vii_o although_o the_o pope_n be_v not_o direct_v temporal_a lord_n and_o superior_a of_o the_o world_n nor_o of_o any_o part_n thereof_o by_o christ_n express_a gift_n and_o donation_n but_o only_o of_o the_o patrimony_n of_o saint_n peter_n give_v he_o by_o constantine_n the_o great_a and_o other_o catholic_a prince_n and_o confirm_v by_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o christian_a world_n yet_o by_o the_o spiritual_a power_n which_o christ_n give_v he_o in_o his_o predecessor_n s._n peter_n io_o 21._o he_o may_v dispose_v of_o temporal_a thing_n and_o even_o of_o kingdom_n for_o the_o good_a of_o the_o church_n and_o conservation_n of_o she_o and_o her_o faith_n &_o right_n and_o the_o manner_n how_o and_o in_o what_o case_n he_o can_v thus_o dispose_v of_o temporality_n be_v explicate_v 1._o have_v show_v by_o many_o argument_n in_o the_o former_a chapter_n that_o the_o prince_n neither_o have_v any_o spiritual_a authority_n neither_o can_v by_o his_o temporal_a power_n intermeddle_v himself_o as_o a_o superior_a in_o matter_n spiritual_a and_o ecclesiastical_a it_o remain_v that_o we_o discuss_v and_o examine_v whether_o contrary_a wise_a the_o pope_n have_v any_o temporal_a power_n or_o can_v by_o his_o spiritual_a power_n dispose_v of_o temporal_a thing_n a_o thing_n i_o confess_v odious_a to_o some_o prince_n who_o can_v hardly_o brook_v it_o that_o you_o shall_v meddle_v with_o their_o crown_n and_o regality_n think_v their_o crown_n so_o fast_o set_v on_o their_o head_n that_o none_o but_o god_n can_v pluck_v they_o of_o and_o imagine_v they_o hold_v their_o sceptre_n so_o fast_o that_o none_o under_o god_n can_v wrest_v they_o out_o of_o their_o hand_n but_o yet_o this_o question_n be_v odious_a only_o to_o such_o as_o set_v little_a by_o the_o church_n authority_n or_o at_o least_o prefer_v the_o state_n before_o religion_n and_o the_o temporal_a advancement_n of_o the_o common_a wealth_n before_o the_o spiritual_a good_a of_o the_o church_n for_o otherwise_o as_o guilty_a malefactor_n only_o cry_v out_o of_o the_o prince_n law_n &_o tribunal_n good_a subject_n embrace_v and_o reverence_v they_o so_o those_o prince_n only_o who_o conscience_n accuse_v they_o of_o some_o disloyalty_n towards_o the_o church_n or_o who_o desire_n to_o prefer_v their_o own_o will_n before_o the_o church_n commandment_n or_o to_o extend_v their_o empire_n with_o encroach_a on_o she_o domain_v and_o to_o rule_v so_o independentlie_o as_o they_o may_v not_o be_v control_v such_o prince_n i_o say_v can_v not_o abide_v to_o hear_v of_o any_o authority_n in_o the_o pope_n or_o church_n which_o may_v restrain_v they_o other_o king_n who_o count_v it_o their_o honour_n to_o be_v obedient_a child_n of_o the_o church_n and_o who_o desire_v not_o to_o reign_v over_o their_o subject_n but_o so_o as_o god_n and_o his_o church_n
may_v reign_v over_o they_o be_v content_a that_o this_o opinion_n of_o the_o pope_n authority_n be_v teach_v in_o school_n and_o publish_v in_o print_a book_n and_o therefore_o of_o late_a his_o catholic_a majesty_n with_o three_o bishop_n of_o his_o counsel_n and_o the_o inquisition_n of_o spain_n authorize_v the_o print_n and_o set_v forth_o of_o a_o book_n of_o this_o subject_n compose_v by_o a_o learned_a divine_a franciscus_n suarius_n &_o entitle_v defensio_fw-la fidei_fw-la catholicae_fw-la &_o apostolicae_fw-la adversus_fw-la anglicanae_n sectae_fw-la errores_fw-la etc._n etc._n in_o which_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o pope_n in_o depose_v prince_n who_o by_o their_o tyranny_n against_o the_o church_n make_v themselves_o unworthy_a of_o their_o honourable_a room_n and_o place_n be_v large_o and_o learned_o defend_v and_o prove_v 2._o i_o confess_v that_o the_o pope_n temporal_a authority_n which_o he_o have_v in_o rome_n and_o italy_n proceed_v not_o from_o the_o immediate_a gift_n of_o christ_n but_o rather_o come_v to_o he_o by_o the_o dan._n the_o cap._n constantinus_n d._n 96._o c._n ego_fw-la ludovic_fw-la d._n 63._o ca._n futuram_fw-la 12._o q._n 1._o naucler_n gen_fw-la 13._o magd._n cent._n 4._o c._n 7._o petr._n damian_n disp_n cum_fw-la reg._n aduoc_fw-la anselm_n li._n 4_o c._n 32._o iuo_o carn_n p._n 5._o decr._n cap._n 49._o genebr_n lib._n 3._o chron._n abraham_n levita_fw-la in_o ca._n 11._o dan._n donation_n of_o constantine_n pipin_n charles_n the_o great_a lewis_z the_o godly_a and_o other_o prince_n as_o be_v testify_v partly_o by_o the_o canon_n law_n partly_o by_o the_o act_n of_o silvester_n partly_o by_o other_o ancient_a writer_n i_o grant_v also_o that_o christ_n make_v he_o no_o temporal_a prince_n but_o only_a pastor_n of_o the_o christian_a world_n for_o although_o many_o legitimus_fw-la many_o ostiens_fw-la in_o cap._n quod_fw-la super_fw-la his_fw-la de_fw-la voto_fw-la &_o voti_fw-la redemp_n anton._n 3._o p._n tit_n 22._o cap._n 5_o §._o 13._o silu._n v._o papa_n &_o v._n legitimus_fw-la canonist_n affirm_v that_o the_o pope_n be_v temporal_a lord_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n yet_o recentiores_fw-la yet_o henr._n quod_fw-la lib._n 6._o q._n 23._o turrecr_n lib._n 2._o summ●_n cap._n 113._o caiet_fw-mi tom_fw-mi 1._o opusc_n tract_n 2._o cap._n 3._o &_o 2.2_o q._n 43._o art_n 8._o &_o passim_fw-la recentiores_fw-la divine_n stand_v against_o they_o in_o this_o point_n and_o not_o without_o good_a reason_n for_o look_v what_o power_n the_o pope_n have_v by_o divine_a right_n he_o have_v from_o the_o apostle_n and_o see_v that_o christ_n make_v his_o apostle_n pastor_n 16._o ephes_n 4._o joan._n 21_o mat._n 16._o not_o prince_n and_o give_v they_o a_o church_n to_o rule_v not_o a_o kingdom_n bestow_v on_o they_o the_o key_n of_o heaven_n not_o of_o city_n 28._o mat._n 18._o act._n 20._o mat._n 28._o give_v they_o power_n to_o bind_v and_o loose_v the_o soul_n not_o the_o body_n to_o teach_v and_o baptize_v all_o nation_n not_o to_o subjugate_v they_o and_o build_v his_o church_n upon_o a_o apostle_n not_o upon_o any_o king_n or_o prince_n it_o follow_v evident_o that_o the_o pope_n by_o christ_n donation_n have_v no_o title_n to_o kingdom_n and_o empire_n 3._o true_a it_o be_v that_o many_o divine_n and_o those_o also_o of_o note_n be_v of_o opinion_n that_o christ_n as_o man_n be_v temporal_a king_n over_o all_o the_o world_n which_o be_v the_o express_a opinion_n of_o s._n 2._o s._n anton._n 3_o p._n tit_n 3._o cap._n 2._o antonine_n 8._o antonine_n almai_n tract_n de_fw-fr potest_fw-la ecc._n c._n 8._o almainus_n 116._o almainus_n turrec_n lib._n 2._o summae_fw-la cap._n 116._o turrecremata_fw-la redemp_n turrecremata_fw-la ostiens_fw-la in_o cap._n quod_fw-la super_fw-la his_fw-la de_fw-la voto_fw-la &_o voti_fw-la redemp_n ostiensis_n 43._o ostiensis_n duran_n tract_n de_fw-mi jurisd_v eccl_n qu._n 43._o durand_n 130._o f_o navar._n in_o cap._n novit_fw-la de_fw-fr judiciis_fw-la not_o 3._o n._n 8._o &_o 130._o navarre_n and_o other_o which_o they_o also_o prove_v out_o of_o diverse_a place_n of_o scripture_n as_o apoc._n ●_o princeps_fw-la regum_fw-la terrae_fw-la prince_n of_o the_o king_n of_o the_o earth_n apoc._n 19_o rex_fw-la regum_fw-la &_o dominus_fw-la dominantium_fw-la king_n of_o king_n and_o lord_n of_o lord_n act._n 10._o hic_fw-la est_fw-la omnium_fw-la dominus_fw-la this_o be_v lord_n of_o all_o psalm_n 8._o and_o heb._n 9_o omnia_fw-la subiecisti_fw-la sub_fw-la pedibus_fw-la eius_fw-la thou_o have_v subject_v all_o thing_n under_o his_o foot_n matt._n ult._n data_fw-la est_fw-la mihi_fw-la omnis_fw-la potestas_fw-la in_o coelo_fw-la &_o in_fw-la terra_fw-la all_o power_n be_v give_v to_o i_o in_o heaven_n and_o in_o earth_n yet_o most_o interpreter_n expound_v these_o place_n as_o mean_v of_o christ_n spiritual_a and_o priestly_a power_n by_o which_o he_o be_v spiritual_a king_n of_o the_o world_n and_o though_o it_o be_v very_o probable_a 3._o 1._o vasq_fw-la 3_o p._n disp_n 87._o ca._n 3._o as_o the_o leardned_a vasquez_n show_v that_o christ_n in_o deed_n as_o man_n be_v temporal_a king_n of_o the_o world_n and_o have_v that_o regal_a dignity_n not_o by_o election_n or_o descent_n but_o only_o by_o hypostatical_a union_n which_o do_v so_o elevate_v and_o dignify_v his_o humane_a nature_n that_o it_o give_v he_o authority_n even_o as_o man_n over_o all_o the_o king_n of_o the_o earth_n by_o which_o he_o may_v have_v command_v they_o even_o in_o temporal_a thing_n and_o may_v have_v deprive_v they_o of_o their_o crown_n yet_o this_o it_o not_o so_o certain_a because_o many_o divine_n also_o hold_v that_o christ_n as_o man_n be_v no_o temporal_a king_n but_o howsoever_o all_o almost_o do_v agree_v that_o christ_n never_o use_v any_o regal_a power_n nor_o do_v actual_o reign_v as_o king_n over_o any_o country_n much_o less_o over_o all_o the_o world_n and_o therefore_o he_o say_v 18_o joan._n 18_o regnum_fw-la meum_fw-la non_fw-la est_fw-la de_fw-fr hoc_fw-la mundo_fw-la my_o kingdom_n be_v not_o of_o this_o world_n because_o although_o his_o spiritual_a kingdom_n the_o church_n be_v in_o this_o world_n yet_o it_o be_v not_o of_o this_o world_n in_o respect_n of_o the_o spiritual_a authority_n and_o grace_n of_o the_o church_n which_o be_v from_o heanen_n and_o although_o it_o be_v probable_a that_o he_o have_v kingly_a authority_n which_o be_v call_v ius_n regnandi_fw-la a_o right_a to_o reign_v by_o which_o he_o may_v have_v reign_v and_o rule_v temporallie_o in_o the_o world_n yet_o as_o i_o have_v say_v he_o never_o actual_o reign_v neither_o do_v he_o exercise_v any_o kingly_a act_n of_o his_o kingly_a power_n and_o so_o have_v say_v that_o his_o kingdom_n be_v not_o of_o this_o world_n ibidem_fw-la ibidem_fw-la be_v give_v a_o reason_n thetof_o say_v si_fw-mi enim_fw-la ex_fw-la hoc_fw-la mundo_fw-la esset_fw-la regnum_fw-la meum_fw-la ministri_fw-la utique_fw-la decertarent_fw-la ut_fw-la non_fw-la traderer_fw-la judaeis_n for_o if_o my_o kingdom_n be_v of_o this_o world_n my_o minister_n very_o will_v strive_v that_o i_o shall_v not_o be_v deliver_v to_o the_o jew_n which_o be_v a_o good_a reason_n if_o you_o understand_v by_o his_o kingdom_n the_o actual_a exercise_n of_o his_o kingly_a authority_n for_o otherwise_o one_o may_v be_v a_o true_a king_n in_o respect_n of_o his_o right_n as_o king_n drive_v by_o force_n out_o of_o their_o kingdom_n be_v and_o yet_o have_v no_o soldier_n nor_o minister_n to_o fight_v for_o they_o 2._o joan._n 2._o i_o know_v some_o author_n contend_v that_o he_o do_v actual_o exercise_v the_o temporal_a power_n of_o a_o king_n when_o with_o a_o whip_n he_o chase_v buyer_n and_o seller_n out_o of_o the_o temple_n yet_o that_o he_o do_v by_o the_o office_n of_o a_o redeemer_n and_o prophet_n who_o part_n be_v to_o correct_v sin_n and_o abuse_n other_o say_v that_o he_o use_v kingly_a authority_n when_o he_o cast_v the_o devil_n into_o the_o hog_n and_o they_o into_o the_o sea_n matth._n 8._o and_o when_o he_o wither_v the_o figgetree_n mat._n 21._o &_o mar._n 11._o otherwise_o say_v they_o he_o have_v do_v injury_n to_o the_o owner_n but_o all_o this_o a_o other_o prophet_n may_v have_v do_v though_o no_o king_n much_o more_o christ_n the_o prophet_n of_o prophet_n and_o yet_o shall_v he_o have_v do_v no_o injury_n to_o the_o owner_n see_v that_o what_o prophet_n do_v miraculous_o they_o do_v by_o authority_n from_o god_n who_o be_v supreme_a lord_n over_o life_n good_n and_o all_o and_o because_o christ_n do_v not_o actual_o reign_v therefore_o emperor_n and_o king_n be_v absolute_a and_o be_v not_o vicaire_n or_o delegate_n to_o christ_n and_o christ_n take_v neither_o crown_n nor_o sceptre_n from_o they_o according_a to_o that_o of_o the_o hymn_n of_o the_o epiphanie_n epiph._n in_o 1._o vesp_n epiph._n hostess_fw-la herodes_n impie_fw-la christum_fw-la venire_fw-la quid_fw-la time_n non_fw-la eripit_fw-la mortalia_fw-la qui_fw-la
less_o dangerous_a to_o they_o see_v that_o by_o permit_v pope_n and_o bishop_n to_o do_v it_o they_o may_v derogate_v to_o their_o own_o authority_n and_o give_v occasion_n to_o they_o to_o prescribe_v against_o they_o and_o to_o do_v it_o not_o in_o the_o prince_n but_o in_o their_o own_o name_n and_o authority_n and_o when_o do_v widdrington_n hear_v that_o any_o good_a christian_n appeal_v from_o the_o church_n and_o pope_n in_o these_o law_n unto_o prince_n as_o to_o their_o high_a superior_n when_o do_v they_o reject_v any_o of_o these_o law_n till_o they_o have_v inform_v themselves_o that_o they_o be_v make_v not_o by_o the_o church_n but_o by_o the_o prince_n authority_n certes_o widdrington_n in_o this_o open_v a_o wide_a gap_n for_o heretic_n and_o all_o contemner_n of_o the_o church_n authority_n and_o what_o may_v he_o not_o defend_v if_o he_o be_v permit_v to_o use_v this_o liberty_n and_o audacity_n as_o for_o his_o author_n we_o shall_v see_v hereafter_o in_o the_o ensew_n thirteen_o chapter_n how_o many_o they_o be_v and_o of_o what_o authority_n 4._o wherefore_o my_o argument_n shall_v proceed_v as_o it_o begin_v in_o this_o manner_n the_o pope_n by_o widdrington_n can_v make_v a_o decree_n to_o depose_v inferior_a temporal_a lord_n ergo_fw-la supreme_a prince_n they_o as_o christian_n be_v as_o subject_a te_fw-la the_o church_n by_o baptism_n as_o above_o be_v show_v in_o the_o 5._o chapter_n num_fw-la 4.5.6_o as_o much_o as_o the_o low_a christian_n though_o in_o that_o they_o be_v absolute_a prince_n they_o have_v no_o superior_a but_o god_n in_o temporal_a authority_n to_o say_v that_o pope_n innocent_a make_v this_o decree_n of_o his_o own_o head_n be_v but_o to_o show_v great_a ignorance_n for_o in_o general_n counsel_n pope_n speak_v ex_fw-la cathedra_fw-la and_o as_o public_a not_o private_a person_n and_o what_o they_o decree_v be_v with_o the_o common_a consent_n of_o all_o the_o bishop_n or_o the_o most_o part_n else_o if_o the_o pope_n shall_v do_v all_o of_o his_o own_o head_n in_o vain_a shall_v he_o assemble_v general_n counsel_n but_o that_o all_o the_o council_n and_o christian_a world_n consent_v to_o this_o decree_n it_o be_v clear_a enough_o for_o that_o no_o mention_n be_v make_v of_o any_o variance_n betwixt_o the_o pope_n and_o the_o council_n in_o this_o matter_n to_o say_v that_o the_o true_a council_n of_o laterane_n be_v not_o extant_a or_o that_o the_o canon_n extant_a be_v compile_v only_o by_o innocentius_n because_o in_o this_o council_n the_o council_n of_o laterane_n though_o not_o this_o but_o another_o be_v cite_v and_o allege_v be_v so_o improbable_a evasion_n that_o they_o merit_v not_o confutation_n and_o be_v very_o suffieientlie_o reject_v by_o the_o book_n call_v discussio_fw-la decreti_fw-la magni_fw-la concilij_fw-la lateranensis_fw-la 5._o one_o thing_n there_o be_v bear_v more_o show_n which_o our_o adversary_n may_v allege_v to_o wit_n that_o if_o this_o council_n do_v in_o express_a term_n define_v that_o the_o pope_n have_v power_n to_o depose_v prince_n they_o will_v then_o yield_v because_o what_o a_o general_n council_n with_o the_o pope_n define_v direct_o and_o express_o be_v a_o mattet_n of_o faith_n and_o it_o be_v heresy_n to_o gainsay_v it_o but_o see_v that_o all_o thing_n speak_v or_o write_v in_o a_o council_n be_v not_o matter_n of_o faith_n for_o as_o divine_n common_o say_v the_o reason_n which_o the_o council_n bring_v for_o confirmation_n of_o her_o decree_n and_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v speak_v incidentlie_o 12._o bellarm._n lib_n 2._o the_o council_n cap._n 11._o &_o 12._o and_o the_o thing_n which_o be_v determine_v as_o probable_a be_v not_o of_o necessity_n to_o be_v believe_v it_o seem_v that_o by_o this_o decree_n we_o be_v not_o bind_v to_o believe_v that_o the_o pope_n can_v depose_v prince_n because_o though_o the_o pope_n and_o council_n make_v a_o decree_n of_o deposition_n yet_o they_o define_v not_o express_o nor_o sub_fw-la anathemate_fw-la under_o pain_n of_o curse_n that_o the_o pope_n can_v depose_v prince_n 6._o but_o who_o so_o please_v to_o consider_v this_o decree_n well_o and_o without_o all_o passion_n or_o partial_a affection_n must_v needs_o confess_v that_o this_o decree_n ought_v to_o be_v of_o very_o great_a credit_n for_o first_o the_o pope_n and_o council_n suppose_v at_o least_o that_o the_o pope_n can_v depose_v prince_n else_o they_o will_v never_o have_v make_v such_o a_o decree_n and_o consequent_o this_o decree_n argue_v that_o the_o pope_n and_o all_o the_o prelate_n prince_n and_o legate_n present_a be_v of_o that_o opinion_n which_o no_o doubt_n they_o be_v so_o many_o and_o so_o learned_a must_v needs_o bear_v a_o great_a sway_n among_o all_o good_a christian_n for_o what_o they_o think_v all_o the_o christian_a world_n at_o least_o for_o the_o most_o part_n thought_n all_o receive_n and_o approve_v this_o council_n but_o widdrington_n will_v say_v that_o he_o will_v not_o deny_v but_o that_o they_o all_o think_v so_o piouslie_o and_o probable_o yet_o because_o they_o define_v not_o in_o express_a term_n that_o the_o pope_n can_v depose_v prince_n he_o will_v not_o believe_v it_o a_o peremptory_a answer_n certain_o and_o wherein_o to_o say_v no_o more_o the_o answerer_n shall_v show_v he_o self_n very_o slow_a and_o hard_o of_o belief_n and_o to_o hardy_a also_o who_o blush_v not_o to_o gainsay_v so_o many_o learned_a and_o godly_a prelate_n and_o who_o so_o many_o grave_a countenance_n and_o judgement_n can_v not_o move_v 7._o but_o i_o will_v deal_v yet_o another_o way_n and_o out_o of_o the_o self_n same_o decree_n although_o the_o pope_n and_o council_n in_o the_o allege_v decree_n do_v not_o express_o define_v that_o pope_n can_v upon_o just_a cause_n depose_v prince_n yet_o it_o argue_v that_o they_o nor_o only_o probable_o but_o very_o and_o assure_o think_v he_o can_v else_o to_o have_v ground_v so_o odious_a a_o decree_n and_o injurious_a also_o if_o the_o pope_n have_v not_o authority_n upon_o a_o probable_a opinion_n have_v be_v great_a rashness_n for_o the_o council_n have_v expose_v thereby_o if_o the_o opinion_n have_v not_o be_v suppose_v most_o assure_v the_o king_n and_o common_a wealth_n yea_o and_o sometime_o the_o whole_a church_n to_o uproar_n garboil_n rebellious_a war_n and_o such_o like_a and_o war_n shall_v have_v be_v just_a also_o on_o both_o side_n for_o the_o subject_n may_v have_v refuse_v to_o obey_v the_o depose_a prince_n as_o be_v free_v by_o a_o general_n counsel_n authority_n from_o all_o obligation_n to_o he_o and_o be_v warrant_v by_o the_o same_o council_n that_o now_o he_o be_v no_o more_o their_o king_n but_o a_o usurper_n and_o inuader_n against_o who_o every_o particular_a man_n have_v iustum_fw-la bellum_fw-la just_a war_n and_o so_o as_o if_o a_o foreign_a prince_n shall_v uniustlie_o invade_v france_n without_o just_a title_n or_o wrong_n receive_v every_o frenchman_n may_v resist_v he_o if_o he_o can_v because_o he_o have_v no_o title_n all_o the_o kingdom_n and_o every_o particular_a member_n have_v just_a war_n against_o he_o so_o if_o a_o prince_n depose_v persist_v in_o government_n he_o be_v according_a to_o the_o pope_n and_o counsel_n opinion_n which_o widdrington_n confess_v to_o be_v probable_a a_o usurper_n and_o invader_n and_o consequent_o every_o one_o of_o his_o former_a subject_n have_v just_a war_n against_o he_o citandi_fw-la cicero_n lib._n 3._o the_o offic_n h●rodotus_n lib._n 3._o xiphilin_n in_o augusto_n alexand_n ab_fw-la alex._n li._n 3._o c._n 26_o d._n the_o in_o 2._o d._n ult._n q._n 2._o a._n 2._o ad_fw-la 5_o sot_n lib._n 5._o the_o just_a q._n 1._o art_n 3._o &_o alij_fw-la infra_fw-la cap._n 15._o citandi_fw-la no_o less_o than_o as_o all_o the_o best_a philosopher_n and_o divine_n teach_v the_o subject_n have_v against_o a_o usurper_n of_o the_o crown_n and_o yet_o this_o prince_n depose_v may_v justly_o also_o persist_v in_o his_o possession_n because_o no_o man_n be_v bind_v to_o forgo_v that_o to_o which_o he_o have_v probable_a right_n be_v warrant_v by_o the_o rule_n of_o the_o law_n 6._o law_n reg._n 65_o de_fw-la regulis_fw-la juris_fw-la in_o 6._o in_o pari_fw-la delicto_fw-la velcausa_fw-la potior_fw-la est_fw-la conditio_fw-la possidentis_fw-la in_o the_o like_a default_n or_o cause_n better_a be_v the_o condition_n of_o he_o that_o be_v in_o possession_n and_o again_o ibid._n again_o reg._n 11_o ibid._n cum_fw-la sunt_fw-la iura_fw-la partium_fw-la obscura_fw-la reo_fw-la favendum_fw-la est_fw-la potius_fw-la quàm_fw-la actori_fw-la when_o the_o right_n of_o the_o party_n be_v obscure_a the_o guilty_a or_o accuse_v be_v to_o be_v favour_v before_o the_o actor_n or_o accuser_n but_o the_o prince_n in_o this_o case_n have_v according_a to_o widdrington_n probable_a right_n and_o be_v in_o possession_n and_o he_o be_v reus_fw-la not_o actor_n
must_v be_v skilful_a in_o that_o art_n or_o science_n which_o trithemius_n himself_o know_v and_o therefore_o leave_v this_o question_n undiscuss_v second_o i_o answer_v that_o trithemius_n speak_v of_o henry_n the_o four_o emperor_n who_o though_o he_o have_v commit_v many_o insolence_n against_o the_o pope_n and_o church_n and_o have_v set_v up_o a_o antipope_n &c._n &c._n which_o his_o enormity_n trithemius_n call_v scelera_fw-la inaudita_fw-la yet_o he_o profess_v himself_o a_o catholic_a and_o so_o the_o school_n divine_n to_o wit_n ocham_n almainus_n and_o such_o other_o as_o i_o have_v relate_v for_o other_o widdrington_n can_v not_o allege_v dispute_v whether_o he_o can_v be_v depose_v he_o be_v or_o pretend_v to_o be_v no_o heretic_n as_o appear_v by_o his_o epistle_n to_o gregor●e_v the_o seven_o allege_v above_o allege_v and_o what_o they_o resolve_v we_o have_v see_v 14._o gallicana_n widdr._n in_o his_o newyearesgift_n pag._n 46._o disput_fw-la theol._n c._n 3._o sec_fw-la 3._o num_fw-la 13._o petrus_n pithaeus_n god_n libert_n ecc._n gallicana_n petrus_n pithaeus_n say_v widdrington_n a_o man_n as_o possevin_n say_v trnlie_o learn_v and_o a_o diligent_a searcher_n of_o antiquity_n affirm_v that_o the_o liberty_n of_o the_o church_n of_o france_n be_v ground_v in_o this_o principle_n which_o france_n have_v ever_o hold_v for_o certain_a that_o the_o pope_n have_v not_o power_n to_o deprive_v the_o french_a king_n of_o his_o kingdom_n or_o in_o any_o other_o manner_n to_o dispose_v thereof_o and_o that_o notwithstanding_o any_o whatsoever_o monition_n or_o monitory_n excommunication_n or_o interdict_v which_o by_o the_o pope_n can_v be_v make_v yet_o the_o subject_n be_v bind_v to_o yield_v obedience_n due_a to_o the_o king_n for_o temporalle_n neither_o therein_o can_v they_o be_v dispense_v or_o absolve_v by_o the_o pope_n and_o in_o his_o disput_n theological_a 13._o cap._n 3._o sec_fw-la 3._o num_fw-la 13._o he_o say_v that_o pithaeus_n out_o of_o a_o general_a maxim_n which_o france_n that_o be_v as_o he_o put_v in_o the_o margin_n the_o great_a part_n ever_o approve_v deduce_v this_o particular_a proposition_n that_o the_o pope_n can_v not_o deprive_v the_o french_a king_n of_o his_o kingdom_n but_o first_o here_o we_o see_v widdrington_n ascribe_v two_o thing_n to_o pithaeus_n which_o seem_v to_o imply_v contradiction_n for_o in_o his_o newyearesgift_n he_o make_v he_o say_v that_o the_o liberty_n of_o the_o church_n of_o france_n be_v ground_v in_o this_o principle_n that_o the_o pope_n have_v not_o power_n to_o deprive_v the_o king_n of_o his_o kingdom_n and_o in_o his_o theological_a disputation_n he_o say_v that_o pithaeus_n out_o of_o a_o certain_a general_a maxim_n deduce_v this_o particular_a proposition_n that_o the_o pope_n can_v not_o give_v the_o kingdom_n of_o freunce_n into_o prey_n nor_o deprive_v the_o king_n of_o it_o and_o so_o he_o make_v this_o position_n that_o the_o pope_n can_v not_o deprive_v the_o king_n of_o france_n both_o a_o general_a maxim_n in_o which_o the_o liberty_n of_o the_o church_n of_o f●aunce_n be_v ground_v and_o also_o a_o particular_a proposition_n deduce_v out_o of_o a_o general_a maxim_n which_o he_o name_v not_o which_o two_o thing_n how_o they_o cohere_v let_v widdrington_n look_v and_o certes_o i_o can_v not_o imagine_v any_o maxim_n receive_v in_o france_n out_o of_o which_o either_o widdrington_n or_o pithaeus_n can_v deduce_v that_o the_o pope_n can_v in_o no_o case_n deprive_v the_o king_n and_o if_o there_o be_v any_o such_o maxim_n receive_v in_o france_n that_o learned_a prelate_n cardinal_n perone_n in_o his_o eloquent_a oration_n make_v in_o the_o chamber_n of_o the_o three_o estate_n not_o only_o in_o his_o own_o name_n but_o also_o in_o the_o name_n of_o all_o the_o nobility_n and_o clergy_n of_o france_n will_v never_o have_v dare_v before_o such_o curious_a auditor_n to_o utter_v these_o word_n follow_v now_o if_o those_o who_o have_v of_o set_a purpose_n labour_v in_o favour_n of_o the_o oath_n of_o england_n he_o put_v in_o the_o margin_n widdrington_n to_o find_v out_o author_n who_o have_v affirm_v that_o in_o case_n of_o heresy_n or_o infidelity_n the_o subject_n can_v not_o be_v absolve_v from_o the_o obligation_n that_o they_o owe_v to_o their_o prince_n can_v not_o find_v out_o any_o one_o and_o if_o those_o who_o have_v since_o write_v of_o the_o same_o subject_n in_o france_n can_v never_o find_v out_o in_o all_o france_n note_n these_o word_n since_o the_o time_n that_o school_n of_o divinity_n have_v be_v institute_v and_o set_v open_a till_o this_o day_n one_o only_o doctor_n neither_o divine_a nor_o lawyer_n nor_o decree_n nor_o council_n nor_o determination_n nor_o act_n of_o parliament_n nor_o magistrate_n either_o ecclesiastical_a or_o politic_a who_o have_v say_v that_o in_o case_n of_o heresy_n or_o infidelity_n the_o subject_n can_v not_o be_v absolve_v from_o the_o oath_n of_o fidelity_n which_o they_o owe_v to_o their_o prince_n on_o the_o contrary_a if_o all_o those_o who_o have_v write_v for_o the_o defence_n of_o the_o temporal_a power_n of_o king_n have_v ever_o except_v the_o case_n of_o heresy_n and_o apostasy_n from_o christian_a religion_n how_o be_v it_o that_o they_o can_v without_o enforce_v of_o conscience_n make_v man_n not_o only_o to_o receive_v this_o doctrine_n that_o in_o no_o case_n the_o subject_n can_v be_v absolve_v from_o the_o oath_n of_o allegiance_n they_o owe_v to_o their_o prince_n for_o a_o perpetual_a and_o universal_a doctrine_n of_o the_o french_a church_n etc._n etc._n thus_o he_o whereby_o it_o be_v manifest_a that_o there_o be_v no_o such_o receive_v maxim_n in_o france_n out_o of_o which_o pithaeus_n or_o widdrington_n can_v deduce_v that_o the_o pope_n in_o no_o case_n can_v deprive_v the_o king_n of_o france_n and_o what_o the_o opinion_n of_o the_o most_o christian_n kingdom_n of_o france_n at_o this_o present_a be_v may_v well_o appear_v by_o this_o that_o all_o the_o nobility_n and_o clergy_n the_o two_o most_o worthy_a part_n and_o member_n of_o that_o realm_n in_o the_o year_n 1615._o reject_v a_o oath_n like_a to_o the_o oath_n of_o england_n as_o pernicious_a cause_n of_o schism_n &_o the_o open_a gap_n to_o heresy_n as_o our_o most_o excellent_a and_o learned_a king_n in_o his_o preface_n to_o his_o declaration_n for_o the_o right_n of_o king_n set_v forth_o in_o french_a the_o same_o year_n confess_v though_o in_o a_o complain_v manner_n and_o as_o it_o be_v to_o be_v see_v in_o the_o oration_n of_o the_o say_a cardinal_n send_v to_o our_o say_a sovereign_n and_o although_o the_o tierce_n estate_n propose_v a_o oath_n like_a to_o that_o of_o england_n yet_o that_o be_v but_o one_o and_o the_o low_a of_o the_o three_o estate_n and_o as_o cardinal_z perone_n affirm_v they_o have_v their_o lesson_n give_v they_o from_o england_n 15._o he_o allege_v also_o out_o of_o bochellus_n the_o testimony_n of_o cardinal_n pelue_v and_o other_o prelate_n who_o in_o a_o assembly_n at_o paris_n 1595._o reject_a the_o decree_n of_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n sess_v 25._o cap._n 19_o by_o which_o it_o be_v forbid_v king_n to_o permit_v duelle_n under_o pain_n of_o lose_v the_o city_n or_o place_n in_o which_o they_o permit_v a_o duelle_fw-fr concilium_fw-la tridentiwm_fw-la inquiunt_fw-la excommunicate_a &_o private_a regem_fw-la civitate_fw-la illâ_fw-la vel_fw-la loco_fw-la in_o quo_fw-la permittit_fw-la fieri_fw-la duellum_fw-la hic_fw-la articulus_fw-la est_fw-la contra_fw-la authoritatem_fw-la regis_fw-la qui_fw-la non_fw-la potest_fw-la privari_fw-la svo_fw-la dominio_fw-la temporali_fw-la respectu_fw-la cvius_fw-la nullum_fw-la superiorem_fw-la recognoscit_fw-la the_o council_n of_o trent_n say_v they_o excommunicate_v and_o deprive_v a_o king_n of_o that_o city_n or_o place_n in_o which_o he_o permit_v a_o duelle_fw-fr to_o be_v make_v this_o article_n be_v against_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o king_n who_o can_v not_o be_v deprive_v of_o his_o temporal_a dominion_n in_o respect_n of_o which_o he_o acknowledge_v no_o superior_a i_o answer_v that_o it_o be_v not_o credible_a that_o cardinal_n pelue_fw-mi and_o those_o prelate_n will_v thus_o reject_v the_o council_n of_o trent_n or_o affirm_v that_o the_o pope_n can_v not_o deprive_v the_o king_n and_o lest_o i_o may_v seem_v to_o do_v injury_n to_o bochellus_n in_v not_o credit_v he_o i_o shall_v give_v reason_n for_o it_o 111._o cap._n 3._o pag._n 111._o for_o first_o as_o schulkennius_n show_v he_o thrust_n into_o the_o decree_n of_o the_o church_n of_o france_n and_o recken_v amongst_o her_o liberty_n many_o scandalous_a thing_n and_o to_o omit_v many_o of_o they_o which_o schulkennius_n note_v i_o will_v note_v only_o two_o or_o three_o of_o his_o absurdity_n which_o i_o have_v see_v in_o his_o book_n in_o his_o preface_n to_o the_o reader_n he_o show_v himself_o no_o good_a catholic_a in_o carp_n uniustelie_o and_o saucy_o
know_v that_o so_o many_o scripture_n theological_a reason_n counsel_n pope_n their_o fact_n and_o practice_n so_o many_o learned_a doctor_n and_o saint_n stand_v for_o the_o contrary_a he_o can_v not_o swear_v absolute_o and_o with_o the_o former_a asseveration_n that_o the_o pope_n have_v no_o such_o authority_n he_o know_v that_o so_o many_o author_n and_o so_o great_a argument_n and_o authority_n do_v countenance_n the_o contrary_a opinion_n yea_o much_o less_o can_v he_o swear_v for_o his_o opinion_n in_o this_o point_n then_o can_v a_o thomist_n for_o his_o touch_v our_o lady_n conception_n because_o the_o thomist_n be_v licence_v by_o the_o express_a leave_n of_o the_o church_n to_o teach_v and_o think_v as_o he_o do_v and_o his_o adversary_n be_v command_v by_o the_o church_n not_o to_o condemn_v his_o opinion_n as_o heretical_a reliq_n council_n trid._n sess_v 5._o c._n 1._o de_fw-fr reform_v sixtus_n 4_o ca._n grave_n nimis_fw-la de_fw-fr reliq_n or_o erroneous_a or_o rash_a which_o warrant_v widdrington_n have_v not_o for_o his_o opinion_n rather_o the_o church_n have_v condemn_v it_o in_o counsel_n and_o practice_n as_o we_o have_v show_v who_o be_v then_o so_o hardy_a or_o rather_o so_o rash_a that_o dare_v swear_v absolute_o that_o the_o pope_n have_v no_o authority_n to_o depose_v prince_n or_o dispose_v of_o their_o kingdom_n the_o contrary_a being_n not_o only_o probable_a yea_o more_o probable_a which_o widdrington_n can_v not_o deny_v but_o also_o a_o matter_n of_o faith_n or_o so_o near_o concern_v faith_n as_o the_o argument_n and_o authority_n produce_v do_v warrant_n that_o cardinal_n allan_n in_o his_o answer_n to_o the_o libeller_n say_v 4._o chap._n 4._o it_o concern_v the_o pope_n supremacy_n and_o power_n apostolical_a 259._o apol._n pro_fw-la card._n bellar._n cap._n 6._o cont_n 4._o pag._n 259._o and_o schulkennius_n very_o well_o aver_v the_o contrary_a be_v either_o heretical_a or_o erroneous_a and_o temerarious_a either_o of_o which_o be_v enough_o to_o deter_v any_o timorous_a conscience_n but_o be_v it_o that_o the_o opinion_n which_o hold_v that_o the_o pope_n in_o some_o case_n can_v depose_v a_o prince_n be_v but_o probable_a yet_o see_v that_o the_o thing_n which_o be_v probable_a may_v be_v true_a and_o if_o it_o be_v the_o more_o common_a and_o probable_a opinion_n as_o widdrington_n deny_v not_o but_o that_o this_o opinion_n of_o depose_v prince_n be_v it_o be_v most_o like_a to_o be_v true_a it_o follow_v consequent_o that_o he_o that_o abiur_v this_o probable_a yea_o more_o probable_a opinion_n that_o the_o pope_n can_v in_o some_o case_n depose_v prince_n expose_v himself_o to_o probable_a danger_n of_o swear_v false_a and_o abiur_v the_o truth_n and_o so_o be_v perjure_a because_o qui_fw-la amat_fw-la periculum_fw-la in_o illo_fw-la peribit_fw-la 3_o eccl._n 3_o he_o that_o love_v danger_n shall_v perish_v therein_o out_o of_o which_o word_n divine_n do_v prove_v that_o he_o who_o witting_o and_o willing_o expose_v himself_o to_o probable_a danger_n of_o any_o sin_n be_v guilty_a before_o god_n of_o that_o sin_n as_o if_o he_o have_v actuallie_o commit_v 19_o certes_o if_o verity_n be_v a_o necessary_a companion_n of_o a_o lawful_a oath_n no_o man_n can_v swear_v more_o than_o he_o think_v there_o be_v verity_n in_o the_o thing_n he_o swear_v wherefore_o that_o he_o may_v swear_v that_o this_o opinion_n be_v probable_a he_o must_v in_o conscience_n think_v it_o at_o least_o probable_a which_o if_o he_o ponder_v the_o authority_n which_o above_o i_o have_v produce_v for_o the_o contrary_a he_o can_v not_o possible_o and_o with_o any_o reason_n think_v to_o swear_v that_o he_o think_v it_o not_o only_o probable_a but_o also_o absolute_o and_o undoubted_o true_a he_o must_v in_o conscience_n be_v so_o persuade_v else_o he_o shall_v swear_v against_o his_o conscience_n and_o otherwise_o then_o in_o his_o conscience_n be_v true_a and_o how_o can_v he_o persuade_v himself_o so_o full_o as_o to_o swear_v that_o from_o his_o hart_n and_o before_o god_n he_o think_v and_o hold_v that_o the_o pope_n in_o no_o case_n can_v depose_v prince_n or_o dispose_v of_o their_o dominion_n he_o know_v that_o so_o many_o and_o with_o so_o great_a reason_n hold_v the_o contrary_a who_o be_v as_o likely_a and_o as_o far_o more_o likely_a not_o to_o be_v deceive_v than_o he_o as_o they_o have_v more_o reason_n and_o authority_n for_o their_o opinion_n than_o he_o 20._o 63._o pag._n 62._o and_o pag._n 63._o widdrington_n in_o his_o newyearesgift_n answer_v that_o whatsoever_o opinion_n a_o man_n follow_v in_o speculation_n concern_v the_o pope_n authority_n to_o deprive_v prince_n yet_o he_o may_v as_o certain_o acknowledge_v and_o swear_v that_o the_o pope_n have_v no_o authority_n to_o depose_v the_o king_n that_o be_v to_o practice_v his_o deposition_n as_o it_o be_v clear_a and_o manifest_a that_o he_o may_v certain_o acknowledge_v and_o swear_v that_o the_o pope_n have_v no_o authority_n to_o commit_v open_a injustice_n and_o that_o in_o a_o doubtful_a uncertain_a and_o disputable_a case_n the_o condition_n of_o the_o possessor_n be_v to_o be_v prefer_v but_o although_o widdrington_n make_v great_a account_v of_o this_o answer_n yet_o it_o will_v be_v find_v defective_a for_o first_o widdrington_n be_v not_o ignorant_a that_o the_o power_n and_o exercise_v of_o the_o power_n be_v two_o thing_n which_o also_o may_v be_v separate_v for_o we_o have_v the_o power_n of_o see_v when_o we_o sleep_v but_o not_o the_o exercise_n of_o it_o &_o we_o have_v the_o power_n of_o walk_v when_o we_o repose_v ourselves_o on_o our_o bed_n and_o yet_o then_o we_o walk_v not_o and_o so_o the_o power_n of_o excommunicate_v and_o depose_n be_v one_o thing_n and_o the_o exercise_n of_o it_o be_v a_o other_o and_o therefore_o the_o bishop_n may_v have_v power_n to_o excommunicate_v and_o yet_o not_o exercise_v that_o power_n and_o the_o pope_n may_v have_v power_n to_o depose_v although_o he_o do_v not_o actuallie_o depose_v any_o second_o widdrington_n know_v that_o a_o man_n may_v have_v the_o power_n to_o do_v a_o thing_n validlie_o that_o be_v so_o as_o the_o thing_n donne_fw-fr shall_v stand_v in_o force_n and_o yet_o not_o lawful_o that_o be_v with_o out_z sin_n as_o for_o example_n the_o prelate_n or_o sovereign_a prince_n who_o have_v authority_n to_o dispense_v in_o positive_a law_n subject_a to_o their_o authority_n if_o they_o dispense_v with_o out_o just_a cause_n the_o dispensation_n according_a to_o the_o probable_a opinion_n of_o diverse_a divine_n be_v valid_a and_o of_o force_n and_o free_v the_o dispense_v in_o conscience_n dispensatio_fw-la soto_n li._n 1_o de_fw-la justitia_fw-la &_o jure_fw-la q._n 7_o a._n 3._o silu_a &_o angelus_n v._o dispensatio_fw-la but_o it_o be_v unlawful_a and_o the_o dispenser_n sin_v so_o the_o pope_n or_o bishop_n may_v sometime_o excommunicate_v validlie_a and_o yet_o not_o lawful_o for_o divine_n affirm_v excommunication_n may_v be_v three_o way_n unjust_a exit_fw-la animo_fw-la when_o there_o be_v just_a cause_n to_o excommunicate_v but_o the_o bishop_n who_o excommunicate_v do_v it_o not_o out_o of_o zeal_n of_o justice_n or_o desire_v of_o amendment_n but_o out_o of_o envy_n hatred_n or_o malice_n exit_fw-la ordine_fw-la when_o the_o bishop_n have_v just_a cause_n to_o excommunicate_v but_o observe_v not_o the_o order_n of_o canonical_a premonition_n which_o be_v to_o be_v do_v thrice_o or_o once_o for_o thrice_o exit_fw-la caviâ_fw-la when_o there_o be_v no_o just_a cause_n the_o first_o excommunication_n be_v always_o valid_a 7._o lib._n 1._o thesauri_fw-la ●●suum_fw-la ●●●sci_fw-la entia_fw-la ca._n 7._o but_o unlawful_a so_o be_v ordinary_o the_o second_o as_o note_v sayrus_n our_o country_n man_n the_o three_o be_v not_o only_o unlawful_a but_o also_o invalid_a and_o of_o no_o force_n so_o also_o the_o pope_n may_v depose_v validlie_o and_o yet_o not_o lawful_o or_o without_o sin_n for_o if_o the_o prince_n give_v sufficient_a cause_n of_o deposition_n and_o the_o pope_n notwithstanding_o shall_v as_o such_o a_o superior_a be_v not_o easy_o to_o be_v think_v so_o to_o do_v depose_v the_o prince_n out_o of_o hatred_n or_o envy_n or_o else_o when_o prudence_n will_v have_v he_o to_o tolerate_v the_o prince_n for_o fear_n of_o garboil_n and_o great_a hurt_n the_o deposition_n shall_v be_v valid_a and_o of_o force_n but_o yet_o unlawful_a and_o sinful_a wherefore_o see_v that_o in_o this_o second_o clause_n we_o be_v to_o swear_v that_o the_o pope_n have_v no_o power_n or_o authority_n to_o depose_v the_o king_n or_o to_o dispose_v of_o his_o majesty_n kingdom_n or_o dominion_n etc._n etc._n although_o perchance_o he_o can_v not_o now_o as_o thing_n stand_v lawful_o exercise_v his_o power_n in_o depose_v a_o absolute_a prince_n because_o much_o more_o hurt_v then_o good_a may_v come_v of_o it_o yet_o if_o it_o be_v
l._n 3._o pol._n ca._n 5._o there_o be_v three_o parttcular_a kind_n of_o government_n the_o first_o be_v call_v monarchia_fw-la when_o one_o as_o king_n and_o monarch_n govern_v the_o second_o be_v call_v aristocratia_fw-la when_o diverse_a but_o few_o and_o those_o of_o the_o better_a sort_n equal_a in_o authority_n do_v rule_n the_o three_o be_v call_v democratia_fw-la when_o many_o and_o those_o of_o the_o common_a people_n rule_n the_o first_o government_n of_o itself_o be_v best_a because_o it_o be_v easy_a to_o find_v one_o good_a and_o wise_a man_n than_o few_o much_o more_o hard_a to_o find_v many_o and_o it_o be_v easy_a for_o many_o to_o obey_v one_o than_o many_o for_o to_o obey_v many_o there_o be_v two_o difficulty_n the_o one_o in_o those_o that_o obey_v and_o that_o difficulty_n be_v also_o find_v in_o a_o monarchy_n the_o second_o in_o the_o commander_n and_o this_o be_v less_o in_o a_o monarchy_n then_o in_o other_o government_n because_o one_o can_v better_o agree_v then_o many_o and_o so_o when_o one_o command_v it_o be_v easy_a for_o the_o subject_n to_o agree_v in_o one_o than_o when_o many_o command_n 2_o vide_fw-la bellar_n li._n 1._o de_fw-fr sum._n pont._n c._n 2_o and_o hence_o it_o be_v that_o tyranny_n which_o be_v opposite_a to_o monarchy_n be_v not_o so_o bad_a as_o faction_n oppose_v to_o aristocratie_n nor_o faction_n of_o a_o few_o so_o bad_a as_o sedition_n of_o the_o people_n opposite_a to_o democraty_n 7._o now_o therefore_o as_o the_o community_n as_o be_v before_o declare_v have_v power_n to_o govern_v itself_o so_o have_v it_o power_n to_o choose_v that_o government_n which_o it_o like_v best_o whether_o it_o be_v one_o of_o the_o former_a three_o simple_a government_n or_o some_o other_o mix_v of_o two_o or_o of_o all_o three_o of_o they_o and_o if_o the_o community_n choose_v magistrate_n who_o shall_v depend_v of_o the_o whole_a community_n than_o the_o community_n be_v the_o chief_a governor_n the_o magistrate_n be_v but_o officer_n and_o minister_n and_o so_o may_v be_v depose_v by_o the_o people_n some_o time_n at_o pleasure_n some_o time_n only_o upon_o some_o urgent_a occasion_n and_o always_o when_o the_o chief_a magistrate_n die_v his_o heir_n succeed_v not_o necessary_o but_o only_o they_o who_o the_o people_n make_v choice_n of_o this_o government_n be_v amongst_o the_o roman_n when_o they_o be_v govern_v by_o plebiscita_fw-la and_o senator_n and_o be_v this_o day_n to_o be_v see_v in_o the_o common_a wealth_n of_o the_o venetian_n the_o genevians_n and_o those_o of_o genua_n if_o the_o community_n make_v choice_n of_o a_o king_n than_o the_o community_n despoil_v itself_o of_o authority_n and_o become_v a_o subject_n and_o as_o it_o be_v a_o private_a person_n and_o give_v all_o power_n and_o authority_n to_o the_o king_n to_o govern_v not_o principal_o for_o his_o own_o private_a but_o for_o the_o common_a good_a of_o the_o whole_a kingdom_n and_o hence_o it_o be_v that_o the_o common_a wealth_n can_v depose_v a_o king_n as_o it_o may_v a_o magistrate_n unless_o it_o be_v in_o case_n of_o intolerable_a tyranny_n 8._o hence_o appear_v a_o great_a difference_n betwixt_o the_o afore_o say_v power_n of_o the_o community_n and_o the_o regal_a power_n of_o the_o king_n because_o the_o former_a power_n of_o the_o community_n follow_v of_o necessity_n the_o lawful_a meeting_n of_o many_o in_o one_o society_n in_o so_o much_o that_o it_o be_v not_o in_o the_o people_n power_n to_o meet_v with_o intention_n to_o live_v together_o and_o not_o to_o have_v that_o power_n and_o so_o this_o power_n depend_v not_o of_o any_o election_n but_o that_o the_o king_n or_o peer_n or_o the_o magistrate_n rule_n and_o govern_v depend_v at_o the_o first_o of_o the_o election_n and_o free_a choice_n of_o the_o people_n in_o who_o power_n it_o be_v to_o choose_v one_o or_o many_o to_o govern_v the_o rest_n and_o so_o kingly_a power_n be_v in_o deed_n of_o god_n but_o by_o mean_n of_o election_n it_o be_v of_o god_n because_o it_o proceed_v from_o the_o community_n power_n which_o be_v of_o god_n and_o nature_n necessary_o follow_v the_o natural_a inclination_n which_o god_n have_v imprint_v in_o we_o to_o live_v in_o society_n and_o yet_o it_o be_v in_o the_o king_n by_o free_a election_n because_o though_o the_o community_n have_v authority_n from_o god_n and_o nature_n to_o rule_v itself_o yet_o that_o this_o power_n be_v give_v to_o the_o determinate_a person_n of_o the_o king_n depend_v of_o the_o people_n election_n 9_o now_o some_o think_v that_o suppose_v the_o people_n election_n god_n immediate_o give_v the_o power_n 128._o wid._n in_o apolog._n rosp_n nu_fw-la 163._o pag._n 128._o this_o be_v the_o opinion_n of_o widdringron_n in_o his_o apologetical_a answer_n for_o the_o right_n of_o prince_n where_o he_o affirm_v that_o quicunque_fw-la in_o supremum_fw-la reipublicae_fw-la superiorem_fw-la legitimè_fw-la deputatur_fw-la etc._n etc._n whosoever_o be_v lawful_o depute_v as_o sovereign_a superior_a of_o the_o common_a wealth_n although_o he_o receive_v that_o dedeputation_n or_o title_n of_o power_n by_o the_o free_a consent_n of_o of_o man_n yet_o the_o total_a power_n of_o rule_v god_n only_o give_v unto_o he_o by_o the_o law_n of_o nature_n but_o widdringron_n shall_v have_v mark_v that_o the_o people_n and_o community_n from_o which_o lawful_o assemble_v necessary_o flow_v as_o above_o we_o have_v see_v a_o power_n to_o govern_v itself_o and_o to_o appoint_v governor_n not_o only_o design_v the_o person_n of_o the_o king_n but_o also_o transfer_v her_o authority_n from_o herself_o to_o the_o king_n and_o become_v herself_o a_o subject_n and_o as_o it_o be_v a_o private_a person_n so_o that_o the_o community_n not_o only_o design_v the_o person_n of_o the_o king_n but_o also_o despoil_v her_o self_n of_o the_o power_n she_o have_v from_o god_n and_o nature_n give_v it_o unto_o the_o person_n choose_v and_o design_v by_o she_o for_o king_n 10._o d._n the._n 2.2_o qu._n 10._o a._n 10._o and_o thersore_n s._n thom._n say_v that_o dominion_n and_o prelacy_n civil_a be_v bring_v in_o by_o humane_a law_n 10._o whorein_a may_v be_v see_v a_o manifest_a difference_n also_o betwixt_o the_o pope_n and_o the_o king_n for_o the_o cardinal_n when_o they_o choose_v one_o of_o their_o company_n to_o be_v pope_n design_v only_o his_o person_n as_o caietan_n well_o observe_v but_o christ_n only_o pont●_n caiet_fw-mi in_o opusc_n de_fw-fr pont●_n and_o not_o the_o cardinal_n after_o this_o deputation_n of_o his_o person_n give_v the_o power_n and_o jurisdiction_n it_o be_v supernatural_a as_o not_o only_o the_o end_n to_o which_o it_o be_v ordain_v but_o also_o the_o act_n and_o function_n of_o this_o jurisdiction_n do_v manifest_o declare_v and_o therefore_o see_v that_o a_o supernatural_a jurisdiction_n surpass_v the_o activity_n of_o the_o cardinal_n they_o be_v but_o moral_a agent_n and_o use_v no_o sacrament_n in_o the_o election_n and_o creation_n of_o the_o pope_n he_o be_v ordinary_o priest_n and_o bishop_n before_o this_o authority_n must_v be_v attribute_v only_o to_o god_n as_o the_o author_n but_o the_o king_n authority_n be_v natural_a and_o moral_a ordain_v only_o of_o itself_o to_o natural_a function_n and_o to_o a_o natural_a end_n which_o be_v temporal_a peace_n and_o felicity_n and_o so_o it_o not_o exceed_v the_o activity_n of_o the_o people_n or_o community_n power_n may_v and_o be_v give_v by_o the_o people_n and_o consequent_o not_o only_a the_o deputation_n of_o the_o king_n person_n but_o also_o his_o regal_a authority_n proceed_v immediate_o from_o the_o people_n 11._o whence_o also_o may_v be_v gather_v a_o difference_n betwixt_o the_o authority_n which_o be_v in_o the_o community_n before_o it_o make_v choice_n of_o a_o king_n and_o the_o authority_n of_o a_o king_n for_o that_o authority_n of_o the_o community_n be_v immediate_o of_o god_n &_o nature_n proceed_v necessary_o from_o a_o community_n lawful_o assemble_v in_o somuch_o that_o it_o be_v not_o in_o the_o power_n of_o the_o community_n to_o be_v without_o this_o power_n unless_o it_o give_v it_o to_o one_o or_o many_o governor_n but_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o king_n do_v not_o necessary_o flow_v from_o this_o community_n because_o it_o be_v in_o the_o free_a choice_n of_o the_o community_n to_o make_v election_n of_o that_o government_n in_o particular_a which_o it_o shall_v think_v best_a and_o so_o if_o it_o make_v election_n of_o a_o monarchical_a government_n and_o consequent_o of_o the_o king_n the_o king_n be_v to_o thank_v the_o community_n not_o only_o for_o the_o deputation_n of_o his_o person_n but_o also_o for_o his_o regal_a authority_n which_o be_v a_o natural_a power_n and_o be_v before_o contain_v eminenter_fw-la or_o virtualiter_fw-la eminentlie_o or_o virtuallie_o in_o the_o community_n
as_o god_n prevent_v the_o jew_n and_o whereas_o they_o by_o law_n of_o nature_n have_v permission_n to_o choose_v their_o king_n yet_o for_o their_o great_a good_a he_o choose_v they_o one_o him_z selue_fw-mi immediate_o so_o although_o by_o the_o law_n of_o nature_n man_n otherwise_o may_v have_v prescribe_v the_o manner_n of_o worship_v god_n and_o the_o worship_n have_v be_v lawful_a so_o that_o it_o have_v be_v the_o worship_n of_o the_o true_a god_n and_o have_v be_v free_a from_o superstition_n yet_o because_o god_n have_v ordain_v we_o to_o a_o supernatural_a end_n and_o will_v have_v our_o ecclesiastical_a government_n free_a from_o all_o superstition_n he_o have_v himself_o appoint_v the_o manner_n of_o government_n and_o have_v give_v the_o authority_n so_o in_o the_o law_n of_o moses_n he_o choose_v the_o tribe_n of_o levi_n to_o serve_v in_o the_o tabernacle_n and_o temple_n and_o to_o menage_n ecclesiastical_a matter_n he_o institute_v also_o sacrifice_n sacrament_n and_o ceremony_n in_o like_a sort_n in_o the_o new_a law_n of_o grace_n under_o which_o we_o live_v he_o commit_v the_o government_n of_o his_o church_n to_o the_o apostle_n and_o disciple_n only_o and_o their_o successor_n he_o institute_v seven_o sacrament_n and_o a_o sacrifice_n he_o give_v we_o a_o law_n and_o belief_n which_o first_o he_o deliver_v by_o preach_v then_o by_o the_o write_a ghospelle_n and_o epistle_n of_o his_o apostle_n and_o other_o thing_n he_o commit_v to_o the_o church_n which_o he_o have_v institute_v and_o establish_v 5._o so_o that_o as_o there_o be_v a_o civil_a and_o temporal_a power_n reside_v in_o the_o common_a wealth_n by_o which_o the_o prince_n or_o magistrate_n can_v govern_v and_o rule_v and_o command_v for_o the_o conservation_n and_o promotion_n of_o the_o temporal_a good_a of_o the_o same_o so_o be_v there_o a_o spiritual_a and_o ecclesiastical_a power_n reside_v in_o the_o church_n by_o which_o the_o pastor_n have_v authority_n to_o preach_v teach_v administer_v sacrament_n determine_v of_o matter_n of_o religion_n to_o call_v council_n for_o the_o better_a clear_n of_o matter_n and_o enact_v law_n which_o shall_v be_v think_v expedient_a unto_o the_o honour_n of_o god_n the_o spiritual_a good_a of_o the_o church_n and_o every_o one_o salvation_n and_o this_o be_v call_v ecclesiastical_a power_n which_o be_v distinct_a from_o the_o temporal_a in_o many_o point_n 6._o first_o in_o respect_n of_o the_o end_n and_o final_a cause_n for_o temporal_a power_n of_o itself_o aim_v only_o at_o temporali_fw-la justice_n peace_n and_o conservation_n of_o the_o temporal_a state_n of_o the_o kingdom_n or_o common_a wealth_n ecclesiastical_a power_n intend_v in_o this_o life_n the_o spiritual_a health_n of_o the_o soul_n and_o eternal_a rest_n and_o peace_n in_o the_o next_o secondlie_o these_o power_n have_v diverse_a act_n and_o see_v that_o power_n be_v distinct_a by_o their_o act_n it_o follow_v that_o temporal_a and_o ecclesiastical_a or_o spiritual_a power_n be_v distinct_a that_o they_o have_v distinct_a act_n it_o be_v manifest_a for_o the_o temporal_a power_n make_v law_n for_o this_o corporal_a life_n and_o temporalle_n state_n but_o the_o spiritual_a and_o ecclesiastical_a power_n make_v law_n for_o the_o soul_n and_o her_o direction_n the_o temporal_a power_n remit_v the_o pain_n only_o of_o sin_n but_o the_o spiritual_a power_n remit_v the_o sin_n itself_o according_a to_o that_o 20_o joan._n 20_o quorum_fw-la remiseritis_fw-la peccata_fw-la etc._n etc._n who_o sin_n you_o shall_v forgive_v etc._n etc._n the_o temporal_a power_n inflict_v and_o remit_v only_o civil_a and_o temporal_a punishment_n as_o imprisonment_n banishment_n temporal_a death_n but_o the_o spiritual_a power_n as_o now_o it_o be_v for_o in_o the_o old_a law_n there_o be_v not_o potestas_fw-la clavium_fw-la excommunicate_v suspend_v interdict_v which_o be_v spiritual_a punishment_n and_o bond_n of_o the_o soul_n and_o remit_v not_o only_o these_o pain_n but_o also_o eternal_a death_n and_o pain_n of_o hell_n for_o when_o the_o priest_n remit_v mortal_a sin_n he_o change_v eternal_a pain_n into_o temporal_a yea_o some_o time_n when_o the_o penitent_a come_v with_o a_o great_a contrition_n he_o remit_v both_o eternal_a and_o temporal_a three_o they_o differ_v in_o their_o object_n for_o the_o spiritual_a power_n dispose_v not_o of_o temporal_a thing_n but_o only_o as_o they_o be_v necessary_a to_o the_o spiritual_a the_o temporal_a meddle_v not_o with_o spiritual_a nor_o ecclesiastical_a matter_n according_a to_o that_o of_o s._n ambrose_n soror_fw-la s._n ambr._n lib._n 5._o ep_n 33._o ad_fw-la marcel_n soror_fw-la ad_fw-la impetatorem_fw-la palatia_fw-la pertinent_a ad_fw-la sacerdotem_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la publicorum_fw-la tibi_fw-la maenium_fw-la ius_fw-la commissum_fw-la est_fw-la non_fw-la sacrorum_fw-la to_o the_o emperor_n palace_n appertain_v to_o the_o priest_n church_n to_o thou_o emperor_n the_o right_a of_o common_a wall_n be_v commit_v not_o of_o church_n and_o nicholas_n pope_n in_o a_o epistle_n to_o michael_n the_o emperor_n 10._o ca._n cum_fw-la ad_fw-la verum_fw-la do_v 96._o vide_fw-la etiam_fw-la ca._n quoniam_fw-la d._n 10._o nec_fw-la imperator_fw-la iura_fw-la pontificum_fw-la arripuit_fw-la nec_fw-la pontifex_fw-la nomen_fw-la imperatoris_fw-la usurpavit_fw-la quoniam_fw-la christus_fw-la sic_fw-la actibus_fw-la propriis_fw-la &_o dignitatibus_fw-la distinctis_fw-la officia_fw-la potestatis_fw-la utriusque_fw-la discrevit_fw-la neither_o have_v the_o emperor_n take_v to_o he_o the_o right_n of_o bishop_n neither_o have_v the_o bishop_n usurp_v the_o name_n of_o the_o emperor_n because_o christ_n have_v distinguish_v the_o office_n of_o both_o by_o their_o distinct_a act_n and_o dignity_n fourthlie_o they_o differ_v in_o respect_n of_o the_o subject_n and_o material_a cause_n for_o although_o it_o be_v not_o impossible_a for_o these_o two_o power_n to_o consort_v in_o the_o same_o subject_n for_o we_o see_v they_o do_v in_o melchisedech_n and_o in_o the_o first_o beget_v of_o the_o jew_n in_o the_o law_n of_o nature_n and_o in_o the_o maccabee_n who_o be_v priest_n and_o prince_n and_o consequent_o have_v temporal_a and_o spiritual_a power_n yet_o as_o in_o other_o thing_n these_o power_n be_v distinct_a so_o god_n not_o only_o in_o the_o law_n of_o grace_n but_o also_o in_o the_o law_n write_v of_o moses_n will_v have_v these_o power_n place_v in_o distinct_a subject_n and_o person_n 19_o 2._o parall_a 19_o for_o in_o the_o law_n of_o moses_n amarias_n manage_v matter_n of_o the_o church_n &_o law_n zabadias_n govern_v the_o affair_n of_o the_o kingdom_n the_o king_n and_o prince_n of_o the_o jew_n be_v of_o the_o tribe_n of_o juda_n the_o priest_n of_o the_o tribe_n of_o levi_n and_o those_o govern_v only_o the_o common_a wealth_n enact_v temporal_a law_n wage_v battle_n etc._n etc._n whereas_o the_o priest_n rule_v it_o matter_n of_o the_o tabernacle_n and_o temple_n offer_v sacrifice_n and_o govern_v the_o synagogue_n and_o now_o in_o the_o law_n of_o grace_n christ_n give_v all_o spiritual_a power_n to_o the_o apostle_n and_o their_o successor_n and_o not_o to_o prince_n for_o to_o the_o apostle_n and_o their_o successor_n it_o be_v say_v whatsoever_o you_o shall_v bind_v upon_o earth_n 18._o mat._n 18._o shall_v be_v bind_v in_o heaven_n and_o whatsoever_o you_o shall_v loss_n upon_o earth_n shall_v be_v loose_v in_o heaven_n to_o prince_n it_o be_v never_o say_v so_o to_o the_o apostle_n and_o their_o successor_n it_o be_v say_v 20._o joan._n 20._o who_o sin_n you_o shall_v forgive_v they_o be_v forgive_v they_o and_o who_o you_o shall_v retain_v they_o be_v retain_v to_o prince_n never_o to_o s._n peter_n a_o apostle_n and_o priest_n it_o be_v say_v 16_o mat._n 16_o thou_o be_v peter_n and_o upon_o this_o rock_n will_v i_o build_v my_o church_n to_o no_o prince_n be_v it_o ever_o say_v in_o that_o sort_n to_o apostle_n and_o priest_n christ_n say_v ult._n matth._n ult._n goinge_v therefore_o teach_v you_o all_o nation_n baptise_v they_o in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o father_n the_o son_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n to_o prince_n never_o to_o apostle_n and_o priest_n christ_n say_v 6._o joan._n 6._o as_o my_o live_a father_n have_v send_v i_o so_o i_o send_v you_o that_o be_v to_o preach_v to_o minister_v sacrament_n and_o to_o govern_v the_o church_n 4._o ephes_n 4._o to_o prince_n never_o to_o the_o apostle_n doctor_n pastor_n prophet_n christ_n commit_v his_o church_n to_o be_v govern_v 28._o act._n 28._o to_o prince_n never_o to_o priest_n s_o paul_n give_v this_o admonition_n attendite_fw-la vobis_fw-la &_o universo_fw-la gregi_fw-la in_fw-la quo_fw-la vos_fw-la spiritus_fw-la sanctus_n posuit_fw-la episcopos_fw-la regere_fw-la ecclesiam_fw-la dei_fw-la quam_fw-la acquisivit_fw-la sanguine_fw-la svo_fw-la take_v heed_n to_o yourselves_o and_o to_o the_o whole_a flock_n wherein_o the_o holy_a ghost_n have_v place_v you_o bishop_n to_o rule_v the_o church_n of_o god_n which_o he_o have_v purchase_v
who_o shall_v have_v care_n of_o the_o spiritual_a and_o eternal_a life_n but_o let_v the_o one_o not_o encroache_v upon_o the_o other_o let_v both_o help_v one_o another_o and_o both_o be_v strong_a as_o be_v excellent_o observe_v by_o nicholas_n the_o pope_n 96._o nichol._n epist_n ad_fw-la michael_n imp._n cap._n gum_n ad_fw-la verum_fw-la ventum_fw-la est_fw-la d._n 96._o cum_fw-la ad_fw-la verum_fw-la ventum_fw-la est_fw-la neque_fw-la imperator_fw-la jura_n pontificatus_fw-la arripuit_fw-la nec_fw-la pontifex_fw-la nomen_fw-la imperatoris_fw-la usurpavit_fw-la quoniaem_fw-la idem_fw-la mediator_n dei_fw-la &_o hominum_fw-la homo_fw-la christus_n jesus_n sic_fw-la propriis_fw-la actibus_fw-la &_o dignitatibus_fw-la distinctis_fw-la officia_fw-la potestatis_fw-la utriusque_fw-la difcrevit_fw-la ut_fw-la &_o christiani_n imperatores_fw-la pro_fw-la aeternâ_fw-la vitâ_fw-la pontificibus_fw-la indigerent_fw-la &_o pontifices_fw-la pro_fw-la cursu_fw-la temporalium_fw-la tantummodo_fw-la rerum_fw-la imperialibus_fw-la legibus_fw-la uterentur_fw-la when_o it_o come_v to_o the_o understanding_n of_o the_o truth_n neither_o the_o emperor_n do_v take_v unto_o he_o the_o right_n of_o bishop-like_a authorotitie_n nor_o the_o bishop_n do_v usurp_v the_o name_n of_o the_o emperor_n because_o the_o same_o mediator_n of_o god_n and_o man_n man_n christ_n jesus_n have_v distinguish_v the_o office_n of_o both_o power_n by_o their_o proper_a act_n and_o distinct_a dignity_n as_o that_o christian_a emperor_n for_o attain_v eternal_a life_n shall_v need_v bishop_n and_o bishop_n shall_v use_v the_o imperial_a law_n for_o the_o cause_n only_o of_o temporal_a thing_n 3._o but_o as_o both_o be_v necessary_a so_o both_o be_v not_o equal_a but_o the_o one_o inferior_a to_o the_o other_o the_o one_o subordinate_a to_o the_o other_o else_o the_o one_o will_v be_v a_o hindrance_n to_o the_o other_o and_o both_o will_v cause_v confusion_n and_o certes_o if_o we_o will_v not_o prefer_v the_o body_n before_o the_o soul_n heaven_n before_o earth_n temporal_a before_o eternal_a life_n we_o must_v prefer_v the_o spiritual_a and_o ecclesiastieall_a power_n before_o the_o temporal_a and_o consequent_o the_o church_n before_o the_o common_a wealth_n 4._o these_o two_o power_n and_o the_o preeminence_n of_o the_o spiritual_a before_o the_o temporal_a be_v prefigure_v as_o turrecremata_fw-la have_v well_o remark_v by_o the_o two_o brazen_a pillar_n in_o the_o porch_n of_o salomon_n temple_n the_o porch_n be_v a_o figure_n of_o the_o church_n militant_a 7._o turrecr_n lib._n 4._o cap._n 87._o 3._o reg._n 7._o the_o inner_a temple_n of_o the_o church_n triumphant_a because_o as_o by_o the_o porch_n the_o jew_n enter_v into_o the_o temple_n so_o by_o the_o church_n militant_a and_o by_o no_o other_o way_n christian_n have_v entrance_n into_o the_o church_n triumphant_a the_o two_o brazen_a pillar_n that_o sustain_v the_o porch_n signify_v the_o power_n temporal_a &_o spiritual_a which_o support_v the_o church_n militant_a and_o the_o pillar_n on_o the_o right_a hand_n signify_v the_o spiritual_a power_n the_o pillar_n on_o the_o left_a hand_n the_o temporal_a power_n whence_o it_o be_v that_o that_o must_v take_v the_o precedence_n of_o this_o and_o this_o must_v be_v subordinate_a to_o that_o 5._o and_o true_o that_o the_o spiritual_a and_o ecclesiastical_a power_n be_v superior_a to_o the_o temporal_a and_o more_o eminent_a than_o it_o i_o prove_v first_o by_o those_o thing_n by_o which_o i_o have_v prove_v they_o in_o the_o former_a chapter_n to_o be_v distinct_a for_o the_o end_n and_o final_a cause_n of_o the_o temporal_a power_n be_v temporal_a and_o natural_a to_o wit_n temporal_a peace_n the_o end_n of_o the_o spiritual_a authority_n be_v eternal_a and_o supernatural_a peace_n the_o immediate_a cause_n efficient_a of_o the_o temporal_a be_v the_o people_n the_o immediate_a cause_n of_o the_o spiritual_a be_v god_n the_o matter_n in_o which_o the_o temporal_a power_n be_v occupy_v be_v temporal_a the_o affair_n which_o the_o spiritual_a govern_v be_v ecclesiastical_a and_o spiritual_a the_o function_n of_o the_o temporal_a be_v all_o temporal_a the_o function_n of_o the_o spiritual_a power_n be_v all_o spiritual_a and_o supernatural_a as_o absolve_a from_o sin_n minister_a sacrament_n offer_v of_o sacrifice_n enact_v law_n for_o the_o soul_n health_n excommunicate_v absolve_a etc._n etc._n the_o temporal_a rule_v especial_o the_o body_n the_o spiritual_a the_o soul_n that_o rule_v the_o kingdom_n or_o common_a wealth_n this_o the_o church_n to_o the_o king_n the_o key_n of_o city_n be_v offer_v to_o the_o priest_n and_o pastor_n the_o key_n of_o heaven_n he_o remit_v temporal_a mulcte_n and_o pain_n no_o sin_n at_o all_o the_o priest_n and_o pastor_n remit_v sin_n and_o absolu_v from_o all_o pain_n he_o can_v cast_v out_o of_o his_o kingdom_n by_o banishement_n the_o pastor_n out_o of_o the_o church_n by_o excommunication_n and_o therefore_o look_v how_o far_o eternal_a felicity_n excel_v temporal_a god_n the_o people_n supernatural_a and_o divine_a thing_n natural_a and_o humane_a spiritual_a function_n temporal_a soul_n body_n the_o church_n the_o common_a wealth_n the_o key_n of_o heaven_n the_o key_n of_o city_n sin_n civil_a penalty_n eternal_a temporal_a punishment_n excommunication_n banishement_n so_o far_o the_o ecclesiastical_a and_o spiritual_a excel_v the_o civil_a and_o temporal_a authority_n by_o this_o argument_n s._n chrysostom_n as_o always_o very_o excellentlie_o prove_v the_o priest_n to_o be_v great_a than_o the_o king_n 5._o chrysost_n homil_n 4._o de_fw-la verbis_fw-la isaiae_n tom_n 5._o mane_fw-la intra_fw-la tuos_fw-la terminos_fw-la o_o rex_fw-la alij_fw-la sunt_fw-la termini_fw-la regni_fw-la alij_fw-la sacerdotij_fw-la hoc_fw-la regnum_fw-la illo_fw-la maius_fw-la est_fw-la rex_fw-la ea_fw-la quae_fw-la sunt_fw-la in_o terris_fw-la sortitus_fw-la est_fw-la administranda_fw-la caeterùm_fw-la ius_fw-la sacerdotij_fw-la è_fw-la supernis_fw-la descendit_fw-la regi_fw-la corpora_fw-la commissa_fw-la sunt_fw-la sacerdoti_fw-la animae_fw-la maior_fw-la hic_fw-la principatus_fw-la propterea_fw-la rex_fw-la caput_fw-la submittit_fw-la manui_fw-la sacerdotis_fw-la &_o ubique_fw-la in_o scripturâ_fw-la sacordote_n inungebant_fw-la reges_fw-la remain_v within_o thy_o bound_n o_o king_n other_o be_v the_o limit_n of_o the_o kingdom_n other_o of_o priesthood_n this_o kingdom_n be_v great_a than_o that_o the_o king_n have_v the_o administration_n of_o the_o thing_n of_o the_o earth_n but_o the_o right_n of_o priesthood_n defcend_v from_o above_o to_o the_o king_n body_n be_v commit_v to_o the_o priest_n soul_n great_a be_v this_o principality_n and_o therefore_o the_o king_n incline_v his_o head_n to_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o priest_n and_o every_o where_o ●n_o scripture_n priest_n do_v anoint_v king_n secondlie_o there_o be_v no_o christian_n can_v deny_v but_o that_o since_o god_n have_v ordain_v we_o to_o a_o supernatural_a end_n to_o wit_n the_o cleate_v vision_n and_o fruition_n of_o himself_o as_o all_o scripture_n witness_v that_o he_o have_v all_o our_o good_n also_o and_o state_n be_v ordain_v to_o the_o same_o end_n and_o be_v not_o well_o use_v but_o rather_o abuse_v when_o they_o be_v use_v to_o serve_v our_o pleasure_n contrary_a to_o that_o end_n whence_o follow_v that_o all_o temporal_a thing_n since_o the_o former_a institution_n and_o ordination_n of_o god_n be_v media_n mean_n in_o respect_n not_o only_o of_o out_o supernatural_a end_n but_o also_o of_o supernatural_a mean_n as_o sacrament_n grace_n and_o supernatural_a function_n which_o be_v more_o proportionate_a and_o more_o near_a mean_n to_o that_o end_n and_o consequent_o temporal_a power_n which_o ordain_v of_o these_o mean_n be_v subject_a to_o spiritual_a power_n which_o principal_o consider_v the_o supernatural_a mean_n and_o end_n for_o as_o the_o art_n of_o ride_v be_v more_o noble_a 1._o arist_n li._n 1._o eth._n c._n 1._o than_o the_o art_n of_o make_v bridle_n as_o aristotle_n to_o a_o like_a purpose_n reason_v because_o this_o be_v ordain_v to_o that_o so_o the_o spiritual_a power_n which_o dispose_v of_o supernatural_a thing_n be_v noble_a than_o the_o temporal_a this_o be_v ordain_v to_o that_o and_o the_o end_n be_v more_o noble_a than_o the_o mean_n 6._o thirdlie_o philosopher_n affirm_v that_o all_o habit_n and_o faculty_n be_v specify_v and_o dignify_v by_o their_o act_n object_n and_o end_n and_o so_o moral_a philosophy_n which_o have_v virtue_n and_o manner_n the_o health_n of_o the_o soul_n for_o its_o object_n be_v more_o noble_a than_o the_o art_n of_o physic_n which_o teach_v only_o to_o cure_v the_o disease_n of_o the_o body_n and_o to_o restore_v corporal_a health_n see_v therefore_o that_o the_o object_n of_o spiritual_a power_n be_v supernatural_a and_o heavenly_a the_o object_n of_o temporal_a power_n be_v natural_a and_o earthly_a the_o end_n also_o of_o spiritual_a power_n be_v eternal_a beatitude_n the_o end_n of_o temporal_a power_n temporal_a felicity_n the_o act_n also_o and_o function_n of_o that_o power_n spiritual_a and_o supernatural_a the_o act_n of_o this_o natural_a and_o
matter_n of_o faith_n when_o as_o thou_o know_v not_o the_o mystiery_n of_o faith_n and_o yet_o again_o to_o the_o same_o purpose_n he_o add_v soluimus_fw-la quae_fw-la sunt_fw-la caesaris_fw-la caesari_n &_o quae_fw-la sunt_fw-la dei_fw-la deo_fw-la etc._n etc._n we_o have_v pay_v to_o caesar_n what_o be_v caesar_n tribute_n be_v caesar_n it_o be_v not_o deny_v the_o church_n be_v god_n therefore_o it_o must_v not_o be_v give_v to_o caesar_n because_o the_o temple_n can_v be_v no_o right_n of_o caesar_n no_o man_n can_v deny_v but_o that_o this_o be_v speak_v with_o caesar_n honour_n for_o what_o more_o honourable_a then_o for_o the_o emperor_n to_o be_v call_v the_o son_n of_o the_o church_n which_o when_o it_o be_v say_v it_o be_v say_v without_o sin_n it_o be_v say_v with_o grace_n imperator_fw-la enim_fw-la bone_fw-la intra_fw-la ecclesiam_fw-la non_fw-la supra_fw-la ecclesiam_fw-la est_fw-la for_o a_o good_a emperor_n be_v within_o the_o church_n not_o above_o the_o church_n the_o like_a liberty_n of_o speech_n he_o use_v also_o in_o a_o epistle_n to_o his_o sister_n marcellina_n sororem_fw-la ambr_n li._n 5._o cit_fw-la ep_v 33._o ad_fw-la marcellinam_fw-la sororem_fw-la mandatur_fw-la denique_fw-la trade_v basilicam_fw-la etc._n etc._n to_o be_v brief_a the_o emperor_n command_n be_v deliver_v up_o the_o church_n i_o answer_v it_o be_v neither_o lawful_a for_o i_o to_o deliver_v it_o nor_o expedient_a for_o thou_o o_o emperor_n to_o take_v it_o thou_o can_v by_v no_o law_n spoil_v or_o ransake_n the_o house_n of_o any_o private_a man_n and_o think_v thou_o that_o the_o house_n of_o god_n may_v by_o thou_o be_v destroy_v and_o ruinate_v it_o be_v allege_v that_o to_o the_o emperor_n all_o thing_n be_v lawful_a all_o thing_n be_v he_o i_o answer_v do_v not_o o_o emperor_n charge_v thyself_o as_o to_o think_v that_o thou_o have_v imperial_a right_n over_o divine_a thing_n do_v not_o extol_v thyself_o but_o if_o thou_o will_v reign_v long_o be_v subject_a to_o god_n it_o be_v write_v 22_o mat._n 22_o what_o be_v god_n to_o god_n what_o be_v caesar_n to_o caesar_n to_o the_o emperor_n palace_n do_v belong_v to_o the_o priest_n church_n to_o thou_o be_v commit_v the_o care_n and_o charge_n of_o public_a wall_n not_o of_o those_o that_o be_v holy_a if_o s._n ambrose_n will_v not_o yield_v a_o church_n or_o chapel_n to_o the_o emperor_n disposition_n will_v he_o if_o he_o have_v live_v in_o king_n henry_n the_o eight_o his_o time_n and_o in_o england_n have_v permit_v he_o to_o seize_v upon_o all_o abbaye_v abbay_n land_n and_o church_n belong_v unto_o they_o or_o will_v he_o or_o s._n athanasius_n or_o hosius_n have_v permit_v he_o to_o sit_v in_o parliament_n as_o supreme_a judge_n in_o matter_n not_o only_o temporal_a but_o ecclesiastical_a or_o if_o they_o have_v see_v cromwell_n appoint_v king_n henry_n the_o eight_o vicaire_n general_n in_o spiritual_a cause_n take_v place_n above_o all_o the_o bishop_n and_o archbishop_n in_o their_o convocation_n will_v not_o athanasius_n have_v call_v it_o the_o abomination_n of_o desolation_n 14._o 53._o bilson_n in_o his_o difference_n pa._n 174._o andr._n in_o tortura_fw-la tortipa_n 169._o field_n li._n 5._o de_fw-fr eccles_n cap._n 53._o to_o this_o argument_n doctor_n bilson_n doctor_n andrew_n and_o doctor_n field_n answer_n that_o constantius_n and_o valentinian_n the_o young_a be_v reprehend_v by_o these_o father_n not_o for_o meddle_v in_o counsel_n and_o ecclesiastical_a affair_n but_o for_o tyrannise_v over_o bishop_n and_o for_o partial_a and_o unjust_a deal_n but_o if_o these_o father_n have_v mean_v no_o otherwise_o they_o will_v not_o so_o absolute_o have_v reprehend_v meddle_v in_o ecclesiastical_a matter_n but_o will_v only_o have_v inveigh_v against_o the_o abuse_n for_o if_o a_o pope_n who_o be_v in_o deed_n head_n of_o the_o church_n shall_v abuse_v his_o authority_n in_o counsel_n or_o ecclesiastical_a judgement_n though_o even_o a_o catholic_n who_o take_v he_o for_o supreme_a head_n may_v reprehend_v the_o abuse_n supra_fw-la athan._n supra_fw-la yet_o he_o can_v not_o say_v to_o he_o as_o athanasius_n do_v to_o constantius_n if_o this_o be_v the_o judgement_n of_o bishop_n what_o have_v the_o pope_n to_o do_v with_o it_o nor_o can_v he_o say_v to_o the_o pope_n as_o he_o do_v to_o the_o emperor_n when_o be_v it_o ever_o hear_v from_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o world_n when_o do_v the_o judgement_n of_o the_o church_n take_v authority_n from_o the_o pope_n neither_o can_v he_o have_v say_v to_o the_o pope_n supra_fw-la hosius_n supra_fw-la as_o hosius_n say_v to_o the_o same_o constantius_n when_o be_v the_o emperor_n present_a to_o wit_n as_o judge_n for_o as_o protector_n and_o hearer_n he_o know_v and_o see_v constantin_n the_o great_a present_a in_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a in_o ecclesiastical_a judgement_n neither_o can_v he_o have_v say_v to_o the_o pope_n as_o the_o same_o hosius_n say_v to_o constantius_n do_v not_o intermeddle_v in_o ecclesiastical_a business_n nor_o do_v thou_o command_v we_o in_o this_o kind_n but_o rather_o learn_v these_o thing_n of_o us._n much_o less_o can_v those_o word_n of_o s._n ambrose_n supra_fw-la ambros_n supra_fw-la which_o he_o so_o bouldlie_o speak_v to_o valentinian_n have_v be_v suitable_a to_o the_o pope_n or_o any_o supreme_a head_n ecclesiastical_a when_o do_v thou_o hear_v o_o most_o clement_a emperor_n pope_n that_o any_o of_o the_o laity_n clergy_n judge_v bishop_n in_o a_o cause_n of_o faith_n much_o less_o can_v these_o other_o word_n of_o s._n ambrose_n have_v be_v fit_v a_o pope_n or_o any_o supreme_a head_n ecclesiastical_a a_o good_a emperor_n pope_n be_v in_o the_o church_n not_o above_o the_o church_n nor_o can_v s._n ambrose_n have_v deny_v so_o peremptory_o to_o deliver_v a_o church_n or_o chapel_n to_o the_o emperor_n if_o he_o have_v deem_v he_o supreme_a head_n of_o the_o church_n much_o less_o can_v he_o have_v allege_v that_o reason_n of_o his_o denial_n to_o the_o emperor_n palace_n appertain_v to_o the_o priest_n church_n for_o if_o the_o king_n be_v supreme_a head_n of_o the_o church_n than_o church_n pertain_v to_o he_o as_o well_o as_o palace_n 15._o but_o let_v we_o hear_v another_o father_n s._n 26._o chrysost_n ho._n 4._o de_fw-la verbis_fw-la isaiae_n 2._o paral._n 26._o chrysostome_n ponder_v the_o audacious_a fact_n of_o king_n ozias_n who_o in_o the_o pride_n of_o his_o power_n victory_n and_o former_a virtue_n arrogate_a to_o himself_o the_o priest_n office_n have_v these_o word_n rex_fw-la cum_fw-la esset_fw-la sacerdotij_fw-la principatum_fw-la usurpat_fw-la volo_fw-la inquit_fw-la adolere_fw-la incensum_fw-la quia_fw-la iustus_fw-la sum_fw-la sed_fw-la mane_n intra_fw-la terminos_fw-la tuos_fw-la alij_fw-la sunt_fw-la termini_fw-la regni_fw-la alij_fw-la termini_fw-la sacerdotij_fw-la be_v a_o king_n he_o usurp_v the_o power_n of_o priesthood_n i_o will_v say_v he_o offer_v incense_n because_o i_o be_o just_a but_o stay_v within_o thy_o limit_n other_o be_v the_o bound_n of_o the_o kingdom_n other_o of_o the_o priesthood_n if_o then_o the_o king_n have_v his_o limit_n prefix_v and_o contain_v within_o the_o kingdom_n it_o follow_v that_o he_o can_v intermeddle_v himself_o as_o a_o superior_a in_o eccles●asticall_a cause_n but_o he_o shall_v pass_v his_o limit_n the_o same_o father_n in_o his_o next_o homely_a have_v these_o word_n isaiae_n chrysost_n hom_n 5._o de_fw-la verbis_fw-la isaiae_n which_o be_v worthy_a the_o mark_v quanquam_fw-la nobis_fw-la admirandus_fw-la videatur_fw-la thronus_fw-la regius_n ob_fw-la gemmas_fw-la affixas_fw-la &_o aurum_fw-la quo_fw-la obcinctus_fw-la est_fw-la tamen_fw-la rerum_fw-la terrenarum_fw-la administrationem_fw-la sortitus_fw-la est_fw-la nec_fw-la ultra_fw-la potestatem_fw-la hanc_fw-la praeterea_fw-la quicquam_fw-la habet_fw-la authoritatis_fw-la verum_fw-la sacerdoti_fw-la thronus_fw-la in_o coelis_fw-la collocatus_fw-la est_fw-la &_o de_fw-fr coelestibus_fw-la negotiis_fw-la pronunciandi_fw-la habet_fw-la potestatem_fw-la although_o the_o king_n throne_n seem_v to_o we_o worthy_a to_o be_v admire_v for_o the_o precious_a stone_n wherewith_o it_o be_v besett_n and_o the_o gold_n wherewith_o it_o be_v cover_v yet_o the_o king_n have_v only_o the_o administration_n of_o terrene_a thing_n neither_o have_v he_o beyond_o this_o power_n any_o further_a authority_n but_o to_o the_o priest_n a_o throne_n be_v place_v in_o heaven_n and_o he_o have_v power_n to_o pronounce_v sentence_n of_o heavenly_a business_n and_o affair_n appertain_v unto_o heaven_n 16._o tenthlie_a i_o prove_v this_o verity_n by_o the_o argument_n wherewith_o in_o the_o former_a chapter_n i_o have_v prove_v that_o king_n christian_n by_o baptism_n be_v make_v subject_n of_o the_o church_n as_o much_o as_o be_v the_o low_a christian_n and_o that_o not_o only_o pope_n but_o inferior_a bishop_n have_v challenge_v superiority_n over_o they_o which_o also_o prince_n from_o the_o beginning_n have_v ever_o acknowledge_v for_o if_o prince_n in_o matter_n ecclesiastical_a be_v
subject_n to_o bishop_n and_o especial_o to_o the_o chief_a bishop_n they_o can_v not_o in_o that_o kind_n be_v head_n and_o superior_n to_o bishop_n 17._o last_o i_o prove_v this_o by_o out_o adversary_n confession_n which_o be_v a_o argument_n ad_fw-la hominem_fw-la of_o no_o little_a force_n because_o none_o be_v presume_v to_o lie_v against_o himself_o amos._n calu._n in_o cap._n 7._o amos._n calvin_n pronounce_v thus_o of_o henry_n the_o eight_o his_o supremacy_n qui_fw-la initio_fw-la tantoperè_fw-la extulerunt_fw-la henricum_fw-la regem_fw-la angliae_fw-la certè_fw-la fuerunt_fw-la homines_fw-la inconsiderrti_fw-la dederuut_n enim_fw-la ill_n summam_fw-la rerum_fw-la omnium_fw-la potestatem_fw-la &_o hoc_fw-la i_o graviter_fw-la semper_fw-la vulneravit_fw-la erant_fw-la enim_fw-la blasphemi_fw-la cum_fw-la vocarent_fw-la eum_fw-la summum_fw-la caput_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la sub_fw-la christo_fw-la they_o who_o in_o the_o beginning_n do_v so_o much_o extol_v henry_n the_o eight_o king_n of_o england_n be_v man_n inconsiderate_a for_o they_o give_v he_o supreme_a power_n of_o all_o thing_n and_o this_o do_v always_o much_o aggreve_v i_o for_o they_o be_v blasphemous_a when_o they_o call_v he_o supreaine_a head_n of_o the_o church_n under_o christ_n this_o be_v the_o opinion_n of_o calvin_n which_o be_v not_o to_o be_v contemn_v of_o our_o protestant_n who_o follow_v he_o as_o a_o oracle_n in_o other_o and_o those_o very_a many_o point_n and_o to_o he_o have_v subscribe_v our_o puritan_n in_o england_n and_o the_o brethren_n of_o helvetia_n zurich_n berne_n geneva_n polonia_n hungary_n and_o scotland_n who_o all_o deny_v this_o supremacy_n of_o king_n in_o ecclesiastical_a cause_n yea_o our_o protestant_n themselves_o whilst_o they_o seek_v to_o avoid_v the_o absurdity_n which_o above_o i_o have_v produce_v against_o this_o supremacy_n and_o which_o catholic_n have_v object_v do_v in_o effect_n despoil_v the_o king_n of_o all_o such_o authority_n 19_o angl._n becanus_n in_o dissid_n angl._n for_o first_o as_o bbcanus_n have_v tell_v they_o they_o be_v not_o agree_v whether_o his_o authority_n shall_v be_v call_v primacy_n or_o supremacy_n nor_o whether_o he_o shall_v be_v style_v primate_n or_o sovereign_n 33._o salclebr_n pag._n 140._o d._n and._n in_o tort._n pag._n 90._o tomson_n pag._n 33._o head_n or_o governor_n salclebridge_n call_v the_o king_n primate_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n doctor_n andrew_n call_v his_o authority_n primacy_n and_o yet_o tomson_n will_v not_o have_v this_o authority_n call_v primacy_n but_o supremacy_n because_o the_o former_a word_n argue_v a_o power_n ecclesiastical_a and_o of_o the_o same_o order_n with_o that_o which_o prelate_n of_o the_o church_n have_v the_o last_o word_n he_o say_v signify_v not_o so_o much_o and_o again_o he_o will_v not_o have_v it_o call_v spiritual_a authority_n but_o authority_n in_o respect_n of_o spiritual_a thing_n 305_o tomson_n pag._n 31._o idem_fw-la pag._n 95._o salcl_n pag._n 305_o and_o he_o add_v that_o the_o king_n govern_v ecclesiastical_a thing_n but_o not_o ecclesiastical_o and_o yet_o salclebridge_n say_v that_o king_n anoint_v with_o sacred_a oil_n what_o will_v he_o then_o say_v of_o king_n that_o be_v not_o anoint_v be_v capable_a of_o spiritual_a jurisdiction_n and_o whereas_o at_o the_o first_o by_o the_o parliament_n anno_fw-la domini_fw-la 1543_o in_o the_o year_n 35._o of_o henry_n the_o eight_o it_o be_v decree_v that_o the_o king_n shall_v be_v call_v supreme_a head_n of_o the_o church_n 133._o poulton_n in_o his_o statute_n tooker_n pag._n 3._o burhill_n pag_n 133._o and_o that_o also_o under_o pain_n of_o high_a treason_n yet_o now_o tooker_n and_o burhill_n will_v not_o have_v the_o king_n call_v head_n of_o the_o church_n and_o so_o in_o deed_n queen_n elizabeth_z in_o the_o first_o parliament_n choose_v rather_o to_o be_v governess_n of_o the_o church_n then_o head_n 20._o and_o as_o these_o man_n vary_v in_o the_o name_n so_o do_v they_o in_o the_o power_n and_o thing_n itself_o tooker_n say_v the_o king_n have_v and_o can_v give_v 140._o tooker_n pag_n 305._o salclebr_n pa._n 140._o and_o take_v away_o all_o jurisdiction_n ecclesiastical_a in_o the_o outward_a court_n salclebridge_n say_v the_o king_n can_v dispense_v in_o plurality_n of_o benefice_n 151._o d._n and._n apud_fw-la tooker_n pa._n 305._o bur._n pa._n 234._o salcl_n pa._n 121._o took_n pag._n 36._o bur._n pag._n 137._o &_o 242._o took_n pag._n 15._o d._n and._n pag._n 151._o and_o can_v licence_v a_o bastard_n to_o take_v holy_a order_n d._n andrew_n say_v he_o have_v all_o external_a jurisdiction_n but_o censure_n yet_o byrhil_n deny_v he_o all_o jurisdiction_n ecclesiastical_a both_o in_o the_o inward_a and_o outward_a court_n salclebridge_n say_v the_o king_n can_v give_v benefice_n create_v and_o depose_v bishop_n and_o yet_o tooker_n say_v he_o can_v only_o nominate_v and_o present_v burhil_n deny_v the_o king_n authority_n to_o excommunicate_v yea_o he_o say_v he_o may_v be_v excommunicate_v and_o the_o same_o do_v also_o d._n andrew_n and_o tooker_n maintain_v but_o what_o a_o supreme_a head_n be_v he_o that_o can_v not_o cut_v of_o by_o excommunication_n a_o infect_v and_o infect_a member_n what_o a_o pastor_n that_o can_v not_o cast_v out_o a_o infect_a sheep_n by_o excommunication_n and_o if_o he_o can_v not_o excommunicate_a but_o rather_o may_v be_v excommunicate_v it_o argue_v that_o he_o have_v a_o superior_a who_o can_v exercise_v ecclesiastical_a jurisdiction_n over_o he_o and_o so_o he_o be_v not_o supreme_a head_n of_o the_o church_n wherefore_o catholic_n as_o they_o acknowledge_v the_o pope_n supreme_a head_n 136._o salcl_n pag._n 136._o so_o they_o say_v he_o can_v not_o be_v excommunicate_v by_o any_o salclebrige_n say_v that_o it_o be_v clear_a than_o the_o sun_n that_o prince_n have_v determine_v controversy_n of_o faith_n in_o 8._o counsel_n citandi_fw-la tooker_n pag._n 50._o bilson_n &_o caeteri_fw-la infra_fw-la citandi_fw-la and_o yet_o tooker_n as_o also_o d._n bilson_n d._n andrew_n and_o d._n field_n as_o we_o shall_v see_v anon_o will_v not_o have_v the_o king_n call_v superior_a in_o matter_n of_o faith_n 21._o after_o this_o doubt_n and_o vary_v they_o proceed_v to_o a_o flat_a denial_n of_o the_o foresay_v supremacy_n 170._o in_o tortura_fw-la torti_n pa._n 170._o d._n andrew_n have_v take_v a_o great_a part_n of_o the_o supremacy_n from_o the_o king_n for_o he_o confess_v that_o the_o emperor_n have_v no_o imperial_a right_n to_o divine_a thing_n these_o be_v his_o word_n non_fw-la est_fw-la in_o ea_fw-la quae_fw-la divina_fw-la sunt_fw-la imperiale_n sed_fw-la neque_fw-la pontificale_fw-la ius_fw-la ullum_fw-la there_o be_v not_o in_o the_o king_n any_o imperial_a no_o nor_o pontifical_a right_n over_o divine_a thing_n he_o add_v that_o the_o king_n have_v no_o right_a to_o dispose_v of_o church_n which_o yet_o king_n henry_n the_o 8._o challenge_v and_o practise_v to_o the_o ruin_n of_o ten_o thousand_o church_n in_o one_o year_n for_o thus_o say_v d._n andrew_n at_o illa_fw-la divina_fw-la hîc_fw-la quae_fw-la tandem_fw-la aedes_fw-la templa_fw-la basilicae_fw-la neque_fw-la verò_fw-la in_o ea_fw-la quae_fw-la ita_fw-la divina_fw-la sunt_fw-la rex_fw-la noster_fw-la ullum_fw-la sibi_fw-la ius_fw-la vendicet_fw-la 171._o ibid._n pa._n 171._o and_o a_o little_a after_o he_o say_v that_o the_o king_n be_v no_o judge_n in_o a_o cause_n or_o matter_n of_o faith_n and_o in_o the_o next_o page_n he_o seem_v to_o affirm_v and_o prove_v out_o of_o the_o counsel_n of_o constantinople_n 172._o pa._n 172._o antioch_n and_o carthage_n that_o the_o king_n be_v not_o to_o be_v judge_n in_o the_o cause_n of_o bishop_n and_o the_o page_n next_o after_o that_o 173._o pa._n 173._o in_o sacrament_n the_o king_n have_v neither_o supreme_a nor_o any_o power_n at_o all_o and_o beside_o all_o this_o he_o add_v that_o he_o can_v excommunicate_v 151_o pag._n 151_o nos_fw-la principi_fw-la say_v he_o cenfurae_fw-la potestatem_fw-la non_fw-la facimus_fw-la we_o do_v not_o grant_v the_o prince_n or_o king_n any_o power_n to_o excommunicate_v etc._n etc._n d._n bilson_n say_v plain_o that_o the_o king_n have_v authority_n over_o the_o person_n of_o the_o church_n 2._o bilson_n in_o his_o true_a difference_n pag._n 171_o &_o 172._o par_fw-fr 2._o but_o not_o over_o the_o thing_n of_o the_o church_n to_o wit_n over_o the_o person_n of_o the_o bishop_n but_o not_o over_o faith_n sacrament_n material_a church_n and_o such_o like_a which_o yet_o i_o see_v not_o how_o it_o can_v stand_v together_o for_o if_o the_o king_n be_v supreme_a head_n not_o only_o over_o the_o kingdom_n but_o also_o over_o the_o church_n that_o be_v of_o the_o person_n of_o the_o church_n then_o as_o because_o he_o be_v supreme_a head_n of_o the_o kingdom_n he_o can_v command_v his_o lie_v subject_n in_o temporal_a matter_n as_o to_o pay_v tribute_n to_o obey_v temporal_a law_n etc._n etc._n so_o if_o he_o be_v supreme_a head_n of_o the_o church_n and_o
have_v authority_n over_o clergy_n man_n as_o clergy_n man_n he_o can_v command_v even_o churchman_n in_o ecclesiastical_a matter_n and_o can_v call_v synod_n determine_v controversy_n of_o faith_n in_o they_o enact_v ecclesiastical_a law_n and_o bestow_v ecclesiastical_a benefice_n and_o so_o he_o shall_v have_v authority_n not_o only_o over_o the_o person_n but_o also_o over_o the_o thing_n of_o the_o church_n and_o therefore_o as_o he_o that_o shall_v say_v that_o the_o king_n for_o the_o necessary_a good_a of_o the_o common_a wealth_n can_v dispose_v of_o the_o temporality_n of_o the_o realm_n shall_v in_o effect_n make_v he_o no_o king_n so_o bilson_n in_o say_v that_o the_o king_n have_v no_o authority_n over_o the_o spiritual_a thing_n and_o grace_n of_o the_o church_n make_v he_o no_o head_n of_o the_o church_n nor_o superior_a over_o church_n man_n as_o church_n man_n for_o if_o the_o king_n be_v head_n of_o the_o person_n of_o the_o church_n he_o can_v command_v they_o as_o his_o subject_n and_o then_o i_o demand_v of_o bilson_n in_o what_o thing_n he_o can_v command_v they_o if_o in_o temporal_a thing_n only_o as_o to_o pay_v tribute_n to_o go_v to_o war_n etc._n etc._n then_o be_v he_o king_n only_o of_o the_o common_a wealth_n but_o no_o head_n of_o the_o church_n if_o in_o spiritual_a thing_n as_o administration_n of_o sacrament_n decision_n of_o matter_n of_o faith_n in_o counsel_n etc._n etc._n then_o have_v he_o the_o administration_n of_o spiritual_a thing_n and_o have_v authority_n not_o only_o over_o the_o person_n but_o also_o over_o the_o thing_n of_o the_o church_n but_o i_o need_v not_o wrest_v this_o from_o bilson_n by_o force_n of_o argument_n for_o he_o no_o less_o plain_o confess_v that_o the_o king_n be_v no_o head_n of_o the_o church_n 240_o bilson_n par_fw-fr 2_o pag._n 240_o these_o be_v his_o word_n we_o confess_v prince_n to_o be_v supreme_a governor_n that_o be_v as_o we_o have_v often_o tell_v you_o supreme_a bearer_n of_o the_o sword_n which_o be_v first_o ordain_v from_o above_o to_o defend_v and_o preserve_v as_o well_o godliness_n and_o honesty_n as_o peace_n and_o tranquillity_n among_o man_n we_o give_v prince_n no_o power_n to_o devise_v or_o invent_v new_a religion_n to_o alter_v or_o change_v sacrament_n to_o decide_v or_o debate_v doubt_n of_o faith_n to_o disturb_v or_o infringe_v the_o canon_n of_o the_o church_n thus_o he_o whereby_o we_o see_v first_o how_o he_o derogate_v from_o that_o authority_n which_o king_n henry_n the_o 8_o and_o queen_n elizabeth_z challenge_v and_o the_o former_a parliament_n approve_v for_o by_o that_o authority_n king_n henry_n the_o 8._o exile_a all_o the_o pope_n authority_n forbid_v all_o appeal_v to_o rome_n contrary_a to_o the_o ancient_a canon_n dispose_v of_o abbay_n and_o church_n without_o the_o pope_n authority_n etc._n etc._n and_o by_o the_o same_o authority_n q._n elizabeth_n change_v the_o sacrament_n and_o all_o the_o whole_a face_n and_o hew_v of_o religion_n and_o forbid_v counsel_n to_o be_v call_v or_o any_o thing_n in_o they_o to_o be_v decide_v without_o her_o consent_n secondlie_o we_o may_v see_v also_o hereby_o how_o bilson_n make_v the_o king_n no_o supreme_a head_n yea_o no_o head_n at_o all_o of_o the_o church_n but_o only_o a_o protector_n and_o defender_n thereof_o which_o title_n all_o catholic_n grant_v to_o king_n acknowledge_v that_o the_o king_n be_v to_o defend_v the_o church_n to_o assist_v she_o by_o his_o temporal_a sword_n and_o authority_n that_o she_o be_v not_o hinder_v in_o call_v counsel_n and_o administration_n of_o the_o church_n yea_o and_o to_o punish_v heretic_n condemn_v by_o she_o and_o deliver_v up_o to_o secular_a power_n and_o no_o more_o do_v bilson_n grant_v and_o so_o he_o deny_v the_o prince_n to_o be_v head_n of_o the_o church_n and_o grant_v he_o to_o be_v only_o a_o protector_n and_o defender_n be_v guilty_a of_o high_a treason_n 22._o 53._o d._n field_n lib._n 5._o de_fw-fr eccles_n cap._n 53._o doctor_n field_n also_o in_o effect_n deni_v this_o authority_n to_o the_o king_n for_o he_o distinguish_v thing_n mere_o spiritual_a in_o this_o manner_n either_o say_v he_o the_o power_n in_o these_o thing_n be_v of_o order_n or_o of_o jurisdiction_n the_o power_n of_o order_n consist_v in_o preach_v the_o word_n in_o minister_a sacrament_n and_o ordain_v minister_n and_o in_o these_o thing_n say_v he_o prince_n have_v no_o authority_n at_o all_o much_o less_o supreme_a authority_n the_o power_n of_o jurisdiction_n stand_v in_o prescribe_v law_n in_o hear_v examine_v and_o judge_v of_o opinion_n in_o matter_n of_o say_v and_o thing_n pertain_v to_o ecclesiastical_a order_n and_o ministry_n and_o due_a perform_v of_o god_n service_n and_o in_o these_o the_o king_n can_v only_o by_o direction_n of_o the_o clergy_n make_v penal_a and_o tempor_n all_o law_n for_o the_o execution_n of_o bishop_n law_n and_o canon_n thus_o he_o but_o to_o omit_v how_o apt_o d._n field_n annex_v preach_v to_o the_o power_n of_o order_n 21_o vide_fw-la sairum_fw-la lib._n 4._o de_fw-la censuris_fw-la cap._n 16._o num_fw-la 21_o which_o may_v be_v exercise_v with_o licence_n of_o the_o bishop_n by_o one_o that_o have_v no_o order_n at_o all_o to_o omit_v also_o how_o he_o can_v possible_o distinguish_v the_o power_n of_o order_n and_o jurisdiction_n he_o and_o his_o doctor_n deny_v all_o character_n and_o make_v ordination_n nothing_o else_o but_o a_o mere_a deputation_n to_o such_o a_o office_n i_o aver_v that_o d._n field_n in_o this_o contradict_v the_o former_a authority_n which_o be_v give_v by_o parliament_n to_o king_n henry_n the_o eight_o and_o king_n edward_z his_o son_n and_o queen_n elizabeth_z his_o daughter_n as_o may_v appear_v plain_o by_o the_o act_n of_o parliament_n above_o allege_v and_o he_o make_v the_o king_n no_o supreme_a head_n of_o the_o church_n but_o only_o a_o assistant_n protector_n and_o defendor_n thereof_o as_o i_o have_v show_v against_o d._n bilson_n 23._o wherefore_o the_o catholic_n of_o england_n have_v just_a cause_n to_o complain_v of_o severe_a deal_n towards_o they_o who_o many_o of_o they_o have_v be_v condemn_v to_o premuniry_n and_o cruel_a death_n for_o deny_v the_o snpremacie_n of_o the_o prince_n in_o spiritual_a cause_n of_o which_o notwithstanding_o the_o leardn_a of_o the_o ministry_n make_v such_o doubt_n and_o question_n as_o we_o have_v see_v yea_o deny_v it_o in_o plain_a term_n for_o if_o that_o care_n have_v be_v have_v of_o the_o king_n catholic_n subject_n which_o their_o number_n antiquity_n and_o loyalty_n seem_v to_o require_v this_o question_n of_o the_o supremacy_n shall_v have_v be_v better_o discuss_v and_o more_o mature_o resolve_v before_o the_o minister_n shall_v have_v preach_v it_o as_o necessary_a to_o be_v believe_v and_o before_o catholic_n shall_v have_v be_v so_o severelie_o handle_v for_o deny_v it_o their_o own_o doctor_n now_o vary_v so_o much_o as_o we_o have_v see_v about_o the_o very_a name_n and_o thing_n itself_o and_o some_o of_o the_o leardn_a among_o they_o deny_v it_o as_o flat_o as_o any_o catholic_n can_v do_v 24._o remember_v then_o o_o king_n prince_n and_o potentate_n of_o the_o earth_n what_o be_v belong_v to_o your_o so_o high_a a_o office_n prince_n psal_n 2._o a_o exhortation_n to_o prince_n et_fw-la nunc_fw-la reges_fw-la intelligite_fw-la erudimini_fw-la qui_fw-la iudicatis_fw-la terram_fw-la and_o now_o o_o king_n understand_v your_o office_n inform_v yourselves_o o_o you_o that_o judge_v the_o earth_n what_o belong_v unto_o you_o you_o be_v judge_n of_o the_o earth_n and_o common_a wealth_n you_o be_v not_o to_o meddle_v with_o the_o church_n which_o be_v call_v regnum_fw-la coelorum_fw-la 13_o mat._n 13_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n you_o be_v 49._o isa_n 49._o as_o esaye_n call_v you_o nurce_v father_n but_o no_o governor_n of_o the_o church_n you_o be_v protector_n and_o defendour_n and_o assistant_n oblige_v by_o sceptre_n and_o sword_n to_o assist_v she_o and_o to_o punish_v her_o rebel_n at_o her_o direction_n you_o be_v subject_n no_o superior_n sheep_n no_o pastor_n inferior_a member_n no_o head_n and_o your_o great_a honour_n and_o safety_n be_v to_o serve_v not_o to_o rule_v the_o church_n to_o defend_v not_o to_o invade_v her_o right_n harken_v o_o prince_n to_o that_o wholesome_a counsel_n which_o azarias_n the_o high_a priest_n give_v to_o king_n ozias_n 11._o 2._o paral._n 26._o joseph_n l._n 9_o ant._n cap._n 11._o who_o will_v be_v meddle_v with_o the_o priest_n office_n for_o when_o he_o be_v puff_v up_o with_o pride_n of_o hart_n take_v upon_o he_o to_o offer_v incense_n in_o the_o temple_n and_o on_o the_o altar_n of_o incense_n azarias_n match_v his_o kingly_a pride_n with_o a_o priestly_a zeal_n follow_v he_o at_o his_o heel_n accompany_v with_o fourscore_o priest_n and_o
follow_v he_o say_v s._n chrysostome_n non_fw-la ut_fw-la regem_fw-la eiecturus_fw-la isaiae_n homi._n 5._o de_fw-la verbis_fw-la isaiae_n sed_fw-la ut_fw-la profugum_fw-la &_o ingratum_fw-la filium_fw-la expulsurus_fw-la not_o as_o though_o he_o be_v to_o cast_v out_o of_o the_o temple_n a_o king_n but_o a_o runnegate_n and_o ungrateful_a servant_n follow_v he_o as_o a_o eager_a mastiff_n do_v the_o beast_n to_o chase_v he_o out_o of_o his_o lord_n and_o master_n house_n and_o as_o one_o that_o take_v no_o care_n of_o the_o king_n threaten_v fear_v neither_o his_o guard_n nor_o his_o regality_n nor_o his_o golden_a crown_n nor_o his_o kingly_a sceptre_n nor_o his_o stern_a look_n and_o majesty_n but_o with_o a_o undaunted_a courage_n with_o a_o constant_a countenance_n and_o a_o free_a voice_n that_o never_o have_v learned_a how_o to_o flatter_v 26_o 2._o par_fw-fr 26_o he_o tell_v he_o as_o plain_o as_o true_o non_fw-la est_fw-la tui_fw-la officij_fw-la ozia_n ut_fw-la adoleas_fw-la incensum_fw-la domino_fw-la sed_fw-la sacerdotum_fw-la hoc_fw-la est_fw-la filiorum_fw-la aaron_n qui_fw-la consecrati_fw-la sunt_fw-la ad_fw-la huiusmodi_fw-la ministerium_fw-la egredere_fw-la de_fw-la sanctuario_fw-la ne_fw-la contempseris_fw-la quia_fw-la non_fw-la reputabitur_fw-la tibi_fw-la ad_fw-la gloriam_fw-la hoc_fw-la à_fw-la domino_fw-la deo_fw-la it_o be_v not_o thy_o office_n ozias_n to_o burn_v incense_n to_o our_o lord_n but_o of_o the_o priest_n that_o be_v of_o the_o child_n of_o aaron_n which_o be_v consecrate_v to_o this_o kind_n of_o ministry_n go_v out_o of_o the_o sanctuary_n contemn_v not_o because_o this_o thing_n shall_v not_o be_v repute_v to_o thou_o for_o glory_n of_o our_o lord_n god_n vide_fw-la say_v s._n chrysostome_n esaiae_n hom._n 4._o de_fw-la verbis_fw-la esaiae_n libertatem_fw-la vide_fw-la mentem_fw-la seruire_fw-la nesciam_fw-la vide_fw-la linguam_fw-la coelos_fw-la attingentem_fw-la vide_fw-la libertatem_fw-la incoercibilem_fw-la vide_fw-la hominis_fw-la corpus_fw-la &_o angeli_fw-la mentem_fw-la vide_fw-la humi_fw-la ingredientem_fw-la &_o in_o caelum_fw-la versantem_fw-la behold_v the_o freeness_n and_o plainness_n of_o a_o priest_n behold_v a_o mind_n that_o never_o know_v how_o to_o be_v servile_a behold_v a_o tongue_n that_o be_v hear_v to_o heaven_n behold_v a_o unrestrained_a liberty_n behold_v the_o body_n of_o a_o man_n the_o mind_n of_o a_o angel_n behold_v one_o tread_v on_o the_o ground_n yet_o converse_v in_o heaven_n let_v i_o o_o christian_a prince_n a_o priest_n not_o of_o aaron_z but_o of_o christ_n use_v the_o like_a liberty_n against_o you_o that_o invade_v the_o church_n right_a and_o arrogate_v priestly_a dignity_n it_o be_v not_o thy_o office_n o_o king_n o_o prince_n to_o meddle_v in_o church_n matter_n or_o government_n of_o the_o church_n but_o it_o be_v the_o office_n of_o priest_n and_o prelate_n consecrate_v and_o ordain_v for_o that_o purpose_n dare_v a_o prince_n once_o offer_v to_o meddle_v in_o the_o church_n government_n to_o sit_v as_o judge_v in_o her_o synod_n to_o pronounce_v sentence_n in_o her_o tribunal_n to_o prescribe_v service_n in_o her_o temple_n depart_v o_o king_n whosoever_o thou_o be_v that_o be_v thus_o hardy_a depart_v out_o of_o the_o sanctuary_n command_v no_o more_o in_o the_o church_n if_o thou_o will_v command_v long_o and_o prosperous_o in_o thy_o kingdom_n depart_v i_o say_v this_o be_v no_o place_n for_o thou_o contemn_v not_o my_o counsel_n lest_o thou_o pay_v for_o thy_o contempt_n and_o be_v strike_v with_o a_o leprosy_n in_o thy_o forehead_n for_o such_o impudency_n it_o be_v no_o glory_n for_o thou_o o_o king_n to_o meddle_v in_o church_n matter_n it_o be_v a_o glory_n indeed_o and_o as_o much_o great_a than_o the_o office_n of_o a_o king_n at_o it_o be_v more_o to_o govern_v soul_n than_o body_n and_o to_o menage_n spiritual_a then_o temporal_a affair_n but_o it_o be_v no_o honour_n to_o a_o king_n neither_o will_v it_o ever_o turn_v to_o the_o prosperity_n of_o he_o or_o his_o posterity_n all_o the_o ancient_a king_n yea_o and_o emperor_n also_o so_o mighty_a in_o arm_n so_o rich_a in_o treasure_n so_o glitter_v in_o their_o crown_n sceptre_n purple_a and_o precious_a stone_n so_o fortunate_a in_o war_n so_o glorious_a in_o victory_n never_o dream_v of_o such_o ambition_n but_o think_v it_o their_o honour_n to_o be_v defendour_n not_o ruler_n of_o the_o church_n subject_n in_o spiritual_a matter_n no_o pastor_n child_n no_o father_n inferior_a member_n to_o the_o church_n no_o supreme_a head_n and_o therefore_o submit_v their_o sceptre_n to_o the_o pastoral_n staff_n their_o crown_n to_o the_o mitre_n their_o temporal_a sword_n to_o the_o spiritual_a glaive_n their_o law_n to_o the_o canon_n their_o kingdom_n to_o the_o church_n their_o person_n to_o the_o priest_n and_o shall_v now_o a_o king_n &_o a_o christian_a king_n arrogate_v ecclesiastical_a authority_n if_o he_o will_v reign_v long_o over_o his_o subject_n let_v he_o permit_v the_o church_n rule_n and_o command_v over_o he_o if_o he_o will_v have_v god_n for_o his_o father_n let_v he_o acknowledge_v the_o church_n for_o his_o mother_n himself_o a_o son_n no_o father_n a_o subject_n in_o this_o kind_n no_o superior_a 25._o harken_v o_o king_n whosoever_o thou_o be_v that_o arrogate_a ecclesiastical_a jurisdiction_n or_o encroach_v upon_o the_o church_n right_a and_o domain_v unto_o s._n ambrose_n his_o counsel_n which_o he_o give_v to_o valentinian_n the_o young_a when_o do_v thou_o hear_v 143_o supra_fw-la citatus_fw-la pag._n 143_o o_o most_o clement_a king_n that_o layman_n be_v bishop_n judge_n in_o matter_n of_o faith_n and_o church_n do_v not_o trouble_v thyself_o as_o to_o think_v that_o thou_o have_v any_o imperial_a right_n in_o divine_a matter_n give_v to_o god_n and_o his_o church_n and_o pastor_n what_o be_v due_a to_o they_o if_o thou_o will_v that_o thy_o subject_n give_v to_o thou_o what_o belong_v to_o thou_o o_o king_n give_v ear_n o_o king_n to_o grave_n hos●us_n his_o speech_n leave_v of_o ibidem_fw-la ibidem_fw-la o_o king_n to_o intermeddle_v in_o such_o matter_n remember_v thou_o be_v a_o mortal_a man_n a_o king_n no_o priest_n and_o reserve_v thyself_o pure_a and_o f●●e_a from_o such_o audacious_a attempt_n command_v not_o priest_n in_o ecclesiastical_a matter_n but_o rather_o learn_v such_o thing_n of_o they_o o_o potentate_n o_o prince_n o_o king_n 16._o nu._n 16._o harken_v to_o azarias_n counsel_n which_o he_o give_v to_o king_n ozias_n it_o be_v not_o thy_o office_n o_o king_n to_o burn_v incense_n to_o our_o lord_n or_o if_o thou_o contemn_v azarias_n his_o counsel_n fear_v ozias_n his_o leprosy_n if_o thou_o will_v arrogate_v the_o office_n of_o aaron_z take_v heed_n least_o with_o chore_n dathan_n and_o abiron_n the_o earth_n devour_v thou_o or_o the_o fire_n consume_v thou_o 3._o 2._o ma●_n 3._o if_o thou_o will_v rob_v the_o treasure_n of_o the_o temple_n take_v heed_n the_o angel_n of_o god_n scourge_v thou_o not_o with_o heliodorus_n 9_o 2._o ma●_n 9_o if_o thou_o will_v spoil_v the_o temple_n and_o kill_v the_o people_n of_o god_n with_o antiochus_n if_o thou_o will_v destroy_v the_o temple_n with_o nabuchodonosor_n use_v prophanelie_o the_o holy_a vessel_n with_o balthasar_n profane_v the_o say_a temple_n with_o pompey_n and_o other_o fear_v their_o infamous_a and_o miserable_a end_n know_v that_o there_o be_v never_o king_n nor_o emperor_n that_o rebel_v against_o the_o church_n or_o persecute_v she_o especial_o since_o christ_n time_n and_o since_o he_o shed_v his_o blood_n for_o she_o that_o have_v not_o have_v some_o miserable_a end_n or_o other_o 26._o and_o to_o omit_v those_o pagan_a persecutor_n nero_n domitian_n dioclesian_n maximinian_n julian_n and_o other_o anast_n other_o zonar_n &_o cedr_n in_o eius_fw-la vira_fw-la rhegino_n lib._n 1._o chron._n a_o 5.8_o martin_n polon_n in_o anast_n anastasius_n the_o first_o emperor_n of_o that_o name_n for_o resist_v the_o pope_n for_o favour_v the_o arrian_n heresy_n and_o for_o disdain_v to_o receive_v or_o to_o admit_v to_o his_o sight_n the_o legate_n who_o hormisda_n pope_n send_v to_o he_o be_v sudden_o with_o a_o thunderbolt_n level_v at_o he_o from_o heaven_n strike_v to_o death_n omnes_fw-la death_n theop._n miscel_n lib._n 17._o cedren_n ●n_fw-fr annal._n niceph._n lib_n 18._o c._n 8._o &_o seqq_fw-la &_o alij_fw-la omnes_fw-la mauritius_n for_o his_o insolence_n against_o s._n gregory_n be_v drive_v out_o of_o his_o empire_n chase_v into_o a_o island_n where_o by_o phocas_n commandment_n himself_o his_o wise_n and_o child_n be_v miserable_o slay_v 565._o slay_v procop._n lib._n 3._o de_fw-la bello_fw-la goth._n nicep_v li._n 17._o c_o 31._o vide_fw-la baron_n to_z 7_o a_o 565._o justinian_n after_o many_o glorious_a victory_n fall_v into_o a_o most_o hard_a fortune_n for_o his_o heresy_n and_o tyranny_n against_o vigilius_n pope_n 〈◊〉_d be_v infest_a on_o all_o side_n with_o the_o incursion_n of_o the_o barbares_fw-la and_o at_o length_n
be_v a_o temporal_a thing_n and_o yet_o the_o high_a priest_n can_v deprive_v even_o a_o king_n of_o the_o same_o and_o if_o he_o may_v dispose_v of_o this_o temporal_a thing_n why_o not_o of_o other_o temporal_a thing_n though_o they_o be_v kingdom_n second_o cohabitation_n or_o at_o least_o power_n and_o right_n of_o cohabitation_n &_o society_n be_v essential_o include_v in_o kingly_a power_n or_o at_o least_o necessarille_n annex_v unto_o it_o for_o a_o king_n be_v he_o that_o have_v supreme_a power_n to_o govern_v his_o subject_n and_o see_v that_o government_n necessary_o require_v yea_o import_v possibility_n or_o right_o to_o cohabitate_a and_o converse_v with_o subject_n for_o how_o can_v he_o govern_v they_o if_o he_o can_v converse_v with_o they_o or_o his_o officer_n if_o the_o king_n may_v by_o the_o priest_n be_v deprive_v of_o all_o right_n to_o cohabitate_a and_o converse_v he_o may_v be_v deprive_v also_o of_o his_o kingdom_n thirdlie_o ozias_n disobey_v the_o high_a priest_n and_o notwithstanding_o his_o reprehension_n and_o express_v commandment_n to_o the_o contrary_a do_v burn_v incense_n to_o our_o lord_n and_o so_o azarias_n may_v have_v cause_v he_o to_o have_v be_v kill_v for_o this_o disobedience_n in_o so_o great_a a_o matter_n 17_o deut._n 17_o as_o appear_v by_o the_o law_n of_o god_n in_o deuteronomie_n where_o moses_n say_v he_o that_o shall_v be_v prove_v refuse_v to_o obey_v the_o commandment_n of_o the_o priest_n which_o at_o that_o time_n minister_v to_o our_o lord_n thy_o god_n and_o the_o decree_n of_o the_o judge_n that_o man_n shall_v die_v and_o thou_o shall_v take_v away_o the_o evil_a out_o of_o israel_n hence_o i_o make_v this_o deduction_n azarias_n the_o high_a priest_n may_v have_v pronounce_v sentence_n of_o death_n against_o king_n ozias_n for_o disobey_v in_o so_o great_a a_o matter_n much_o more_o may_v he_o have_v depose_v he_o and_o deprive_v he_o of_o his_o kingdom_n for_o death_n which_o be_v deprivation_n of_o life_n be_v a_o great_a penalty_n than_o deprivation_n of_o a_o kingdom_n and_o include_v also_o that_o because_o a_o dead_a man_n can_v be_v king_n and_o if_o azarias_n can_v deprive_v ozias_n of_o his_o kingdom_n it_o be_v like_a that_o in_o separate_v he_o from_o cohabitation_n with_o the_o people_n he_o do_v in_o deed_n deprive_v he_o and_o certes_o this_o the_o scripture_n in_o the_o same_o place_n insinuare_v say_v fuit_fw-la igitur_fw-la ozias_n etc._n etc._n 26._o 2._o paral._n 26._o ozias_n therefore_o the_o king_n be_v a_o leper_n unto_o the_o day_n of_o his_o death_n and_o he_o dwell_v in_o a_o house_n a_o part_n moreover_o joathan_n his_o son_n govern_v the_o king_n house_n and_o judge_v the_o people_n of_o the_o lord_n which_o last_o word_n insinuate_v that_o his_o son_n reign_v and_o be_v king_n in_o his_o place_n and_o consequent_o that_o he_o be_v depose_v 11._o lib._n 9_o antiq._n cap._n 11._o and_o so_o josephus_n seem_v to_o have_v understand_v the_o matter_n when_o treatinge_v of_o this_o fact_n of_o ozias_n and_o the_o issue_n thereof_o he_o say_v et_fw-la cum_fw-la aliquamdiu_fw-la extra_fw-la urbem_fw-la vixisset_fw-la filio_fw-la joathano_n rempnblicam_fw-la administrante_fw-la moerore_fw-la tanden_fw-mi confectus_fw-la obijt_fw-la and_o for_o some_o time_n he_o have_v live_v out_o of_o the_o city_n his_o son_n joathan_n administrate_v the_o common_a wealth_n isai_n hom._n 4._o de_fw-la verhis_fw-la isai_n at_o last_o he_o be_v kill_v with_o sorrow_n the_o same_o do_v also_o s._n chrysostome_n avouch_v say_v cumque_fw-la sacerdotium_fw-la sibi_fw-la vellet_fw-la sumere_fw-la &_o hoc_fw-la quod_fw-la habebat_fw-la perdidit_fw-la and_o when_o he_o will_v take_v upon_o he_o priesthood_n he_o lose_v that_o kingdom_n which_o he_o have_v 15._o barron_n a_o christi_fw-la 31._o tiberij_fw-la 15._o to_o this_o may_v be_v add_v that_o which_o baronius_n well_o observe_v in_o his_o annal_n to_o wit_n that_o the_o jew_n have_v a_o council_n call_v synedrin_n or_o sanedrin_n which_o consist_v of_o 72._o person_n and_o succeed_v the_o 72._o who_o assist_v moses_n num._n 11._o which_o council_n have_v authority_n to_o judge_v of_o the_o law_n of_o the_o prophet_n and_o of_o king_n and_o over_o this_o council_n the_o high_a priest_n have_v supreme_a authority_n this_o council_n be_v of_o such_o credit_n that_o it_o summon_v herod_n to_o appear_v and_o to_o answer_v to_o hircanus_n and_o the_o judge_n under_o he_o to_o that_o which_o be_v to_o be_v object_v against_o he_o and_o when_o he_o appear_v in_o his_o purple_a and_o with_o a_o strong_a troop_n sameas_fw-la one_o of_o the_o judge_n reprehend_v this_o his_o manner_n of_o come_v and_o tell_v he_o that_o he_o come_v in_o that_o manner_n 6.17_o exit_fw-la josepho_n lib._n 14._o antiq_fw-la 6.17_o ut_fw-la si_fw-la capitalem_fw-la iuxta_fw-la leges_fw-la sententiam_fw-la in_o eum_fw-la tulerimus_fw-la nobis_fw-la mactatis_fw-la ipse_fw-la evadat_fw-la illatâ_fw-la vi_fw-la legibus_fw-la that_o if_o we_o according_a to_o the_o law_n shall_v pronounce_v sentence_n of_o death_n against_o he_o he_o use_v force_n against_o the_o law_n and_o kill_v we_o may_v escape_v by_o which_o it_o be_v plain_a that_o this_o council_n and_o consequent_o the_o high_a priest_n have_v authority_n to_o judge_n of_o the_o law_n prophet_n and_o king_n and_o that_o therefore_o azarias_n have_v authority_n to_o pronounce_v sentence_n of_o death_n and_o much_o more_o of_o deposition_n against_o ozias_n and_o see_v he_o may_v depose_v he_o it_o be_v like_o the_o fore_n say_v circumstance_n consider_v that_o he_o do_v depose_v he_o 3._o i_o confess_v that_o our_o adversary_n may_v answer_v that_o this_o example_n do_v not_o convince_v that_o ozias_n be_v depose_v but_o only_o that_o he_o not_o actual_o govern_v his_o son_n govern_v for_o he_o he_o remain_v still_o king_n till_o his_o death_n but_o yet_o if_o this_o fact_n be_v not_o take_v bare_o but_o with_o the_o law_n also_o of_o leviticus_fw-la and_o the_o argument_n deduce_v out_o of_o it_o with_o other_o insinuation_n of_o scripture_n losephus_n s._n chrysostome_n and_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o council_n of_o sanedt_n in_o it_o be_v sufficient_a to_o prove_v that_o the_o high_a priest_n do_v or_o may_v have_v depose_v he_o i_o confess_v also_o that_o our_o adversary_n may_v answer_v 2._o deut._n 2._o that_o there_o be_v in_o the_o old_a law_n a_o express_a statute_n to_o put_v to_o death_n those_o that_o will_v disobey_v the_o high_a priest_n in_o matter_n pertain_v to_o the_o law_n and_o that_o therefore_o the_o high_a priest_n may_v pronounce_v sentence_n of_o death_n and_o consequent_o of_o deprivation_n against_o a_o king_n but_o in_o the_o new_a law_n there_o be_v no_o such_o express_a law_n and_o the_o new_a law_n also_o be_v a_o law_n of_o sweetness_n and_o charity_n not_o of_o fear_n and_o rigour_n the_o case_n be_v not_o the_o like_a this_o they_o may_v say_v but_o yet_o see_v that_o it_o make_v much_o for_o the_o honour_n of_o the_o synagogue_n and_o her_o security_n to_o have_v have_v such_o a_o power_n if_o the_o church_n be_v the_o verity_n the_o synagogue_n but_o the_o figure_n and_o as_o far_o inferior_a to_o the_o church_n as_o the_o law_n and_o priesthood_n and_o sacrifice_n of_o christ_n be_v superior_a to_o that_o of_o moses_n no_o honourable_a nor_o profitable_a power_n and_o authority_n grant_v to_o the_o synagogue_n be_v to_o be_v deny_v to_o the_o church_n and_o therefore_o see_v it_o be_v a_o honour_n to_o have_v authority_n to_o depose_v prince_n and_o that_o it_o be_v many_o time_n necessary_a for_o the_o conservation_n of_o the_o church_n her_o right_a and_o faith_n for_o many_o time_n admonition_n yea_o commandment_n and_o excommunication_n will_v take_v no_o effect_n with_o proud_a and_o rebellious_a prince_n if_o such_o power_n be_v grant_v to_o the_o synagogue_n it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v deny_v to_o the_o church_n 4._o another_o example_n which_o divine_n use_v to_o allege_v be_v 23_o 4._o reg._n 11_o 2._o par._n 22._o &_o 23_o that_o of_o queen_n athalia_fw-la who_o as_o we_o read_v in_o the_o four_o book_n of_o king_n be_v by_o the_o commandment_n of_o the_o high_a priest_n deprive_v first_o of_o her_o kingdom_n and_o afterward_o of_o her_o life_n and_o that_o also_o after_o she_o have_v reign_v six_o year_n and_o although_o it_o may_v seem_v that_o he_o only_o set_v the_o right_a king_n joas_n in_o his_o throne_n and_o displace_v a_o usurper_n who_o have_v kill_v all_o the_o right_a king_n son_n save_v joas_n alij_fw-la bellarminus_n becanus_n &_o alij_fw-la who_o be_v secret_o reserve_v and_o still_o live_v yet_o many_o learned_a author_n affirm_v that_o she_o be_v before_o her_o deposition_n true_a and_o lawful_a queen_n because_o though_o she_o enter_v by_o tyramnicall_a usurpation_n yet_o reign_v so_o long_o peaceable_o it_o be_v very_o like_a that_o she_o be_v receive_v
carnal_a but_o mighty_a to_o god_n unto_o the_o destruction_n of_o munition_n destroy_v counsel_n and_o all_o loftiness_n extol_v itself_o against_o the_o knowledge_n of_o god_n and_o bring_v into_o captivity_n all_o understanding_n unto_o the_o obedience_n of_o christ_n and_o have_v in_o a_o readiness_n to_o revenge_v all_o disobedience_n and_o a_o little_a after_o quam_fw-la dedit_fw-la nobis_fw-la dominus_fw-la etc._n etc._n which_o power_n our_o lord_n have_v give_v we_o to_o edification_n not_o to_o your_o destruction_n upon_o which_o place_n s._n chrysostome_n say_v cor._n chrysost_n hom_n 22._o in_o ep_n ad_fw-la cor._n ad_fw-la hoc_fw-la potentiam_fw-la accepimus_fw-la ut_fw-la aedificemus_fw-la quod_fw-la si_fw-la quis_fw-la obluctetur_fw-la tum_fw-la demum_fw-la altera_fw-la quoque_fw-la facultate_fw-la utamur_fw-la eum_fw-la diruente_n ac_fw-la prosternentes_fw-la to_o this_o end_n we_o have_v receive_v power_n that_o we_o may_v edify_v but_o if_o so_o be_v any_o stand_v out_o or_o become_v obstinate_a then_o may_v we_o use_v another_o mean_n pull_v he_o down_o and_o prostratinge_v he_o which_o place_n as_o some_o think_v proove_v that_o the_o chief_a pastor_n may_v inflict_v temporal_a punishment_n even_o on_o prince_n and_o therefore_o s._n bonifac._n aug._n ep_v 50._o ad_fw-la bonifac._n augustine_n hence_o proove_v that_o heretic_n may_v he_o punish_v temporal_o but_o at_o least_o it_o proove_v that_o the_o pastor_n and_o especial_o the_o chief_a pastor_n of_o the_o church_n have_v not_o only_o authority_n to_o preach_v and_o minister_v sacrament_n but_o also_o to_o chastise_v offender_n by_o spiritual_a censure_n which_o power_n calvin_n in_o his_o commentaty_n on_o this_o place_n affirm_v to_o be_v ground_v on_o the_o text_n of_o s._n matthew_n before_o allege_v 18._o mat._n 18._o whatsoever_o you_o shall_v bind_v on_o earth_n etc._n etc._n to_o which_o purpose_n he_o appli_v that_o place_n of_o hieremie_n 1._o hier._n 1._o behold_v i_o have_v appoint_v thou_o this_o day_n over_o the_o gentile_n and_o over_o kingdom_n that_o thou_o may_v pluck_v up_o and_o destroy_v and_o waste_v and_o dissipate_v and_o build_v and_o plant_v which_o word_n insinuate_v power_n to_o dispose_v even_o of_o temporal_a kingdom_n and_o authority_n and_o at_o least_o by_o caluins_n confession_n signify_v power_n to_o excommunicate_v and_o to_o inflict_v spiritual_a pain_n which_o excommunication_n be_v no_o less_o pain_n and_o punishment_n than_o a_o spiritual_a band_n and_o chain_n wherewith_o the_o soul_n be_v chain_v than_o a_o banishment_n from_o the_o church_n of_o god_n than_o a_o delivery_n up_o to_o satan_n than_o a_o cut_n of_o from_o all_o communion_n with_o the_o church_n for_o as_o they_o who_o be_v obedient_a child_n of_o the_o church_n be_v partaker_n of_o three_o communion_n and_o communication_n quast_o aug._n li._n 1_o count_v advers_a legis_fw-la &_o proph_n cap._n 17._o aug._n ser_n 68_o de_fw-la verbis_fw-la apost_n &_o habetur_fw-la c._n omnis_fw-la christia_n nus_fw-la 11._o quast_o to_o wit_n of_o conversation_n one_o with_o another_o of_o sactament_n and_o of_o suffrage_n prayer_n satisfaction_n and_o merit_n so_o he_o that_o be_v excommunicate_v be_v deprive_v of_o all_o these_o three_o good_n wherefore_o s._n augustin_n say_v that_o it_o be_v gravius_fw-la malum_fw-la excommunicarià_fw-la sacerdotibus_fw-la dei_fw-la quàm_fw-la si_fw-la quis_fw-la gladio_fw-la feriretur_fw-la flammis_fw-la absorberetur_fw-la aut_fw-la ferisobijceretur_fw-la it_o be_v a_o great_a ill_o to_o be_v excommunicate_v by_o the_o priest_n of_o god_n then_o if_o a_o man_n be_v kill_v by_o the_o sword_n consume_v by_o fire_n or_o cast_v unto_o wild_a beast_n to_o be_v devour_v and_o again_o omnis_fw-la christianus_n qui_fw-la à_fw-la sacerdotibus_fw-la excommunicatur_fw-la sathanae_fw-la traditur_fw-la etc._n etc._n every_o christian_n that_o be_v excommunicate_v by_o the_o priest_n be_v deliver_v up_o to_o satan_n how_o so_o because_o out_o of_o the_o church_n be_v the_o devil_n as_o within_o the_o church_n christ_n and_o so_o hereby_o he_o be_v as_o it_o be_v deliver_v up_o to_o the_o devil_n who_o be_v separate_v from_o ecclesiastical_a communion_n and_o society_n hence_o i_o deduce_v this_o argument_n the_o chief_a pastor_n of_o the_o church_n can_v excommunicate_v a_o rebellious_a prince_n and_o by_o excommunicate_v he_o deprive_v he_o of_o all_o the_o spiritual_a treasure_n of_o the_o church_n as_o sacrament_n suffrage_n merit_n and_o satisfaction_n yea_o he_o can_v cut_v he_o clean_o from_o the_o church_n and_o deliver_v he_o up_o to_o satan_n ergo_fw-la he_o can_v when_o it_o be_v necessary_a for_o the_o good_a of_o the_o church_n deprive_v he_o of_o temporal_a good_n and_o even_o of_o his_o kingdom_n i_o prove_v the_o consequence_n because_o he_o that_o can_v inflict_v the_o great_a punishment_n can_v inflict_v the_o lesser_a but_o it_o be_v a_o great_a punishment_n to_o be_v cut_v of_o from_o the_o church_n and_o to_o be_v deprive_v of_o her_o spiritual_a good_n and_o grace_n then_o to_o be_v deprive_v of_o city_n country_n and_o temporal_a kiugdome_n ergo_fw-la the_o chief_a pastor_n that_o can_v cast_v a_o prince_n out_o of_o the_o church_n can_v cast_v he_o out_o of_o his_o kingdom_n 2._o i_o know_v our_o adversary_n will_v deny_v for_o all_o this_o my_o consequence_n as_o widdrington_n do_v because_o not_o always_o he_o that_o can_v do_v more_o can_v do_v less_o but_o only_o then_o when_o the_o more_o and_o the_o less_o be_v of_o the_o same_o kind_n and_o nature_n as_o for_o example_n he_o that_o can_v carry_v fifty_o pound_n weight_n can_v carry_v five_o and_o twenty_o pound_n weight_n and_o yet_o he_o that_o can_v discourse_v and_o reason_n which_o be_v more_o can_v not_o fly_v which_o be_v less_o because_o reason_v and_o fly_v be_v not_o of_o the_o same_o kind_n and_o nature_n but_o yet_o for_o all_o this_o my_o illation_n and_o consequence_n be_v like_a to_o that_o of_o the_o apostle_n s_o paul_n 6._o 1._o cor._n 6._o which_o can_v not_o be_v deny_v for_o say_v he_o if_o the_o world_n shall_v be_v judge_v by_o you_o be_v you_o unworthy_a to_o judge_v of_o the_o least_o thing_n know_v you_o not_o that_o we_o shall_v judge_v angel_n how_o much_o more_o secular_a thing_n and_o the_o self_n same_o argument_n use_v gregory_n the_o seven_o to_o prove_v that_o he_o may_v depose_v henry_n the_o four_o for_o in_o the_o instrument_n of_o that_o emperor_n deposition_n speak_v to_o the_o apostle_n s_o peter_n 11._o vide_fw-la baron_n tom_fw-mi 11._o a_o 1080._o n._n 11._o and_o s._n paul_n he_o proove_v that_o they_o by_o he_o and_o he_o by_o authority_n receive_v from_o they_o may_v depose_v the_o aforesaid_a emperor_n because_o say_v he_o you_o by_o pope_n your_o successor_n have_v often_o take_v patriarchship_n primacy_n archiepiscopall_a and_o episcopal_a dignity_n from_o the_o wicked_a and_o unworthy_a and_o have_v bestow_v they_o on_o religious_a man_n si_fw-mi enim_fw-la spiritualia_fw-la iudicatis_fw-la quid_fw-la de_fw-la secularibus_fw-la vos_fw-la posse_fw-la credendum_fw-la est_fw-la &_o si_fw-fr angelos_n dominantes_fw-la omnibus_fw-la superbis_fw-la principibus_fw-la iudicabitis_fw-la quid_fw-la de_fw-la illorum_fw-la seruis_fw-la facere_fw-la potestis_fw-la for_o if_o you_o judge_v spiritual_a thing_n what_o may_v we_o think_v you_o can_v do_v concern_v thing_n that_o be_v secular_a and_o temporal_a and_o if_o you_o shall_v judge_v angel_n that_o have_v dominion_n over_o all_o proud_a prince_n what_o may_v you_o do_v with_o those_o that_o be_v their_o servant_n and_o inferior_n where_o we_o see_v that_o not_o only_o gregory_n the_o seven_o but_o also_o s._n paul_n do_v use_v the_o like_a argument_n to_o that_o which_o i_o use_v and_o prove_v that_o they_o who_o can_v judge_v of_o spiritual_a matter_n may_v much_o more_o of_o temporal_a for_o although_o it_o do_v not_o always_o follow_v in_o good_a consequence_n that_o a_o man_n can_v do_v the_o lesser_a because_o he_o can_v do_v the_o great_a as_o beside_o the_o allege_v example_n many_o other_o do_v convince_v for_o a_o man_n can_v speak_v which_o be_v more_o and_o yet_o he_o can_v not_o bark_v like_o a_o dog_n which_o be_v less_o yet_o when_o the_o thing_n be_v of_o the_o same_o nature_n or_o at_o least_o not_o altogether_o disparate_a and_o independent_a the_o consequence_n be_v good_a wherefore_o see_v that_o temporal_a thing_n be_v ordain_v to_o a_o spiritual_a end_n if_o not_o of_o their_o own_o nature_n yet_o by_o god_n his_o institution_n who_o have_v ordain_v we_o unto_o a_o supernatural_a end_n as_o above_o i_o have_v declare_v and_o consequent_o be_v subordinate_a and_o as_o it_o be_v mean_n to_o a_o further_a end_n it_o may_v be_v say_v by_o good_a consequence_n as_o s._n paul_n and_o s._n gregory_n the_o seven_o say_v the_o chief_a pastor_n can_v judge_v and_o dispose_v of_o spiritual_a thing_n ergo_fw-la he_o can_v judge_v and_o dispose_v of_o temporal_a thing_n when_o they_o be_v necessary_a to_o conferue_v the_o spiritual_a and_o
force_v her_o subject_n to_o idolatry_n and_o superstition_n hinder_v by_o violence_n preach_v administration_n of_o sacrament_n and_o all_o practice_n of_o religion_n what_o shall_v the_o church_n do_v excommunicate_a these_o persecutor_n she_o can_v have_v no_o spiritual_a power_n over_o they_o they_o be_v not_o incorporate_v to_o the_o church_n by_o baptism_n and_o if_o she_o can_v 63._o psal_n 63._o they_o will_v contemn_v all_o such_o weapon_n tanquam_fw-la sagittas_fw-la paruulorum_fw-la as_o the_o arrow_n of_o child_n what_o then_o must_v the_o church_n stand_v still_o and_o let_v the_o cruel_a persecutor_n do_v his_o worst_a must_v she_o expose_v herself_o and_o her_o subject_n to_o their_o mercy_n that_o have_v no_o mercy_n cerres_n if_o in_o that_o case_n she_o may_v not_o take_v arm_n she_o be_v the_o unabl_a and_o worst_a provide_v common_a wealth_n that_o ever_o be_v and_o what_o if_o the_o heretic_n wandalica_fw-la vide_fw-la baron_n a_o christi_fw-la 348._o &_o victorem_fw-la vticen_n de_fw-fr persec_n wandalica_fw-la who_o common_o be_v more_o cruel_a than_o pagan_n as_o the_o cruelty_n of_o the_o arrian_n and_o even_o of_o protestant_n and_o puritan_n in_o france_n the_o low_a country_n and_o our_o island_n also_o bear_v to_o evident_a witness_n will_v use_v the_o like_a or_o great_a cruelty_n and_o tyranny_n against_o the_o church_n and_o the_o true_a faithful_a people_n thereof_o what_o defensive_a armour_n have_v christ_n give_v she_o excommunication_n you_o will_v say_v or_o other_o spiritual_a censure_n but_o what_o if_o they_o also_o as_o common_o they_o do_v will_v contemn_v all_o such_o arm_n and_o weapon_n how_o shall_v the_o church_n conserve_v herself_o and_o withstand_v their_o cruelty_n shall_v she_o expose_v her_o throat_n and_o breast_n to_o the_o tyrant_n sword_n herself_o and_o her_o subject_n to_o his_o cruelty_n shall_v she_o permit_v sacrament_n and_o preach_v to_o be_v forbid_v all_o exercise_n of_o religion_n to_o be_v hinder_v and_o in_o lieu_n thereof_o all_o abomination_n to_o be_v set_v up_o and_o promote_v you_o will_v say_v that_o after_o she_o have_v threaten_v god_n judgement_n use_v her_o spiritual_a arm_n and_o weapon_n she_o have_v no_o more_o to_o do_v have_v no_o temporal_a arm_n to_o use_v and_o so_o must_v commit_v all_o to_o god_n but_o then_o say_v i_o that_o christ_n who_o be_v incarnate_a and_o live_v and_o dye_v for_o the_o church_n have_v not_o sufficient_o provide_v for_o her_o defence_n and_o they_o that_o say_v she_o can_v only_o have_v access_n in_o that_o case_n to_o god_n be_v like_a to_o those_o philosopher_n who_o deny_v all_o power_n to_o second_o cause_n to_o produce_v substantial_a form_n and_o effect_n and_o make_v god_n the_o only_o author_n but_o as_o these_o philosopher_n be_v hiss_v out_o of_o the_o school_n because_o since_o god_n create_v all_o at_o the_o beginning_n he_o do_v nothing_o in_o nature_n but_o by_o second_o cause_n so_o i_o say_v that_o widdrington_n and_o other_o who_o deny_v the_o church_n all_o power_n to_o defend_v herself_o be_v unnatural_a child_n yea_o merciless_a and_o cruel_a enemy_n in_o remit_v she_o to_o god_n only_o who_o though_o he_o always_o hear_v our_o prayer_n and_o petition_n yet_o do_v not_o always_o grant_v they_o wherefore_o we_o must_v find_v out_o a_o sword_n and_o a_o ordinary_a second_o cause_n which_o may_v in_o this_o case_n defend_v the_o church_n and_o this_o be_v no_o other_o than_o her_o spiritual_a power_n by_o which_o as_o above_o be_v declare_v she_o can_v dispose_v of_o temporal_a good_n and_o kingdom_n for_o the_o necessary_a conservation_n of_o the_o spiritual_a good_a for_o the_o better_a declaration_n whereof_o i_o demand_v of_o our_o protestant_n in_o england_n if_o his_o majesty_n shall_v turn_v catholic_n and_o consequent_o shall_v put_v the_o minister_n out_o of_o office_n persecute_v they_o with_o sword_n and_o fire_n what_o will_v they_o do_v they_o will_v perchance_o excommunicate_v he_o but_o what_o if_o he_o contemn_v such_o excommunication_n as_o justly_o he_o may_v they_o be_v no_o true_a bishop_n what_o will_v they_o do_v true_o if_o a_o man_n may_v guess_v by_o that_o they_o teach_v and_o have_v practise_v in_o scotland_n england_n france_n germany_n &_o the_o low_a country_n they_o will_v trust_v more_o to_o their_o sword_n then_o their_o word_n as_o we_o shall_v see_v hereafter_o that_o they_o have_v do_v in_o the_o like_a case_n 10._o widdr._n in_o disp_n theol._n c._n 3._o n._n 21._o sect_n 1._o a_o objection_n of_o widdr._n but_o widdrington_n tax_v the_o learned_a suarez_n say_v that_o if_o because_o the_o church_n be_v a_o absolute_a common_a wealth_n and_o consequent_o have_v sufficient_a authority_n to_o defend_v herself_o we_o may_v infer_v that_o she_o may_v use_v not_o only_o spiritual_a but_o also_o temporal_a arm_n we_o must_v infer_v also_o that_o god_n must_v give_v the_o church_n not_o only_a authority_n to_o depose_v prince_n but_o also_o force_n and_o mean_n to_o execute_v the_o sentence_n of_o her_o deposition_n answer_n the_o answer_n which_o yet_o we_o see_v she_o always_o have_v not_o i_o answer_v that_o it_o be_v not_o necessary_a that_o god_n shall_v always_o give_v execution_n to_o matter_n for_o the_o king_n and_o common_a wealth_n can_v always_o actual_o suppress_v rebel_n and_o vanquish_a enemy_n but_o yet_o as_o if_o the_o king_n or_o common_a wealth_n have_v not_o authority_n to_o defend_v itself_o by_o defensive_a and_o offensive_a weapon_n neither_o he_o nor_o the_o common_a wealth_n be_v sufficient_o by_o god_n and_o nature_n furnish_v or_o provide_v for_o so_o if_o christ_n have_v not_o give_v his_o church_n power_n and_o authority_n to_o defend_v and_o conserve_v herself_o by_o temporal_a arm_n when_o the_o spiritual_a glaive_n will_v not_o serve_v he_o have_v not_o provide_v sufficient_o for_o she_o neither_o have_v she_o have_v the_o authority_n which_o be_v due_a to_o a_o absolute_a common_a wealth_n and_o although_o god_n have_v promise_v to_o protect_v his_o church_n to_o the_o end_n as_o he_o promise_v to_o defend_v the_o synagogue_n and_o to_o continue_v the_o kingdom_n to_o david_n posterity_n yet_o he_o use_v second_o cause_n for_o the_o execution_n and_o performance_n of_o his_o say_v promise_n and_o therefore_o as_o not_o withstand_v his_o promise_n the_o jew_n and_o david_n use_v humane_a mean_n as_o war_n and_o such_o like_a for_o their_o conservation_n so_o may_v the_o church_n when_o her_o spiritual_a power_n be_v contemn_v 11._o but_o although_o as_o this_o argument_n proove_v the_o church_n may_v use_v temporal_a arm_n in_o case_n of_o necessity_n yet_o it_o be_v not_o so_o convenient_a that_o she_o shall_v do_v it_o by_o herself_o immediate_o but_o rather_o by_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o prince_n when_o she_o can_v induce_v he_o to_o undertake_v her_o cause_n and_o defence_n and_o for_o that_o cause_n though_o she_o use_v to_o deliver_v heretic_n brachio_n seculari_fw-la to_o the_o secular_a arm_n and_o power_n yet_o she_o use_v not_o to_o punish_v they_o herself_o not_o for_o that_o she_o can_v but_o because_o it_o be_v not_o convenient_a she_o shall_v but_o only_o when_o temporal_a prince_n will_v not_o do_v that_o office_n for_o she_o 26._o lib_fw-la 4._o the_o consider_v cap._n 3._o joan._n 10._o mar._n 26._o whereupon_o s._n bernard_n allude_v to_o those_o word_n of_o christ_n convert_v gladium_fw-la tuum_fw-la in_o vaginam_fw-la as_o he_o aver_v the_o power_n of_o handle_v the_o temporal_a sword_n so_o he_o say_v it_o be_v not_o convenient_a for_o the_o pastor_n to_o use_v it_o but_o only_o to_o command_v it_o for_o thus_o he_o speak_v to_o pope_n eugenius_n the_o three_o quid_fw-la tu_fw-la denuò_fw-la gladium_fw-la usurpare_fw-la tentas_fw-la etc._n etc._n what_o do_v thou_o go_v about_o to_o take_v to_o thyself_o again_o that_o sword_n which_o once_o thou_o be_v command_v to_o put_v up_o in_o to_o the_o sheath_n which_o yet_o whosoever_o deny_v to_o be_v thou_o do_v not_o seem_v to_o i_o to_o have_v sufficient_o attend_v to_o the_o word_n of_o out_o lord_n who_o say_v put_v up_o thy_o sword_n into_o the_o scabbart_n it_o be_v thy_o therefore_o &_o perchance_o at_o thy_o beck_n though_o not_o by_o thy_o hand_n to_o be_v draw_v otherwise_o if_o it_o do_v not_o any_o wise_a pertain_v unto_o thou_o when_o the_o apostle_n say_v behold_v two_o sword_n here_o our_o lord_n will_v not_o have_v answer_v it_o be_v enough_o but_o it_o be_v to_o much_o therefore_o both_o the_o spiritual_a and_o material_a sword_n be_v the_o church_n but_o that_o be_v to_o be_v use_v for_o the_o church_n this_o also_o of_o the_o church_n 32._o orat._n in_o auxent_n quae_fw-la extat_fw-la lib._n 5._o ●p_n eius_fw-la post_o epist_n 32._o that_o by_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o priest_n this_o by_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o soldier_n but_o yet_o at_o the_o beck_n of_o the_o
decree_n will_v obstinate_a lie_v hold_v that_o the_o pope_n can_v depose_v a_o prince_n or_o free_a his_o subject_n from_o their_o fidelity_n and_o allegiance_n he_o must_v grant_v that_o either_o the_o pope_n with_o the_o council_n command_v against_o faith_n or_o that_o he_o disobey_v against_o faith_n not_o believe_v that_o to_o be_v just_a which_o the_o pope_n decree_v with_o a_o general_n council_n this_o decree_n of_o this_o great_a council_n do_v so_o trouble_v and_o pussle_v widdrington_n that_o in_o his_o book_n entitle_v discussio_fw-la discussionis_fw-la 1._o sec_fw-la 1._o he_o endeavour_v by_o many_o argument_n though_o as_o he_o will_v seem_v in_o the_o name_n of_o other_o to_o make_v this_o council_n of_o little_a credit_n which_o be_v not_o the_o spirit_n of_o the_o learned_a cardinal_n allan_n 4._o chap._n 4._o who_o in_o his_o answer_n to_o the_o libeler_n call_v it_o the_o famous_a council_n of_o lateran_n and_o come_v to_o allege_v this_o decree_n of_o the_o father_n of_o that_o council_n he_o thus_o pronounce_v these_o than_o be_v the_o word_n of_o their_o most_o renown_a decree_n 10._o the_o same_o argument_n i_o may_v draw_v out_o of_o the_o general_n council_n of_o lion_n 6._o cap._n 1_o de_fw-la homicidio_fw-la in_o 6._o which_o have_v this_o decree_n sacri_fw-la approbatione_fw-la concilij_fw-la statuimus_fw-la etc._n etc._n by_o the_o approbation_n of_o the_o holy_a council_n we_o do_v decree_n that_o whatsoever_o prince_n prelate_n or_o whatsoever_o ecclesiastical_a or_o secular_a person_n shall_v cause_v or_o command_v any_o christian_n to_o be_v kill_v by_o the_o aforesaid_a murderer_n although_o death_n thereby_o do_v not_o follow_v or_o shall_v receive_v or_o defend_v or_o hide_v they_o shall_v incur_v ipso_fw-la facto_fw-la the_o sentence_n of_o excommunication_n and_o deposition_n from_o his_o dignity_n honour_n office_n and_o benefice_n and_o that_o the_o same_o may_v be_v give_v free_o to_o other_o by_o they_o to_o who_o the_o collation_n appertain_v 11._o likewise_o another_o council_n of_o lion_n and_o general_n also_o hold_v in_o the_o year_n of_o our_o lord_n 1245._o platina_n exit_fw-la nauclero_fw-la aemilio_n platina_n at_o which_o be_v present_a baldvine_a the_o emperor_n and_o s._n lewis_n of_o france_n innocent_a the_o four_o with_o with_o consent_n of_o the_o council_n depose_v frederick_n the_o second_o and_o absolve_v his_o subject_n from_o their_o oath_n make_v unto_o he_o command_v under_o pain_n of_o excommunication_n all_o his_o adherent_n to_o leave_v he_o and_o not_o to_o obey_v he_o as_o emperor_n &_o give_v permission_n to_o the_o electour_n to_o choose_v another_o in_o his_o place_n 16._o extat_fw-la cap._n ad_fw-la apostolicae_fw-la de_fw-fr scent_n &_o re_fw-mi iud_v in_o 6._o vide_fw-la etiam_fw-la westmo_n naest_n a_o 1245._o mat._n 16._o the_o decree_n be_v this_o nos_fw-la itaque_fw-la super_fw-la praemissis_fw-la etc._n etc._n we_o therefore_o with_o our_o brethren_n and_o the_o holy_a council_n have_v premise_v a_o diligent_a deliberation_n about_o the_o aforesaid_a and_o many_o other_o his_o heinous_a excess_n see_v that_o we_o though_o unworthy_a supply_v the_o place_n of_o christ_n in_o earth_n and_o that_o to_o we_o in_o the_o person_n of_o bless_a peter_n it_o be_v say_v whatsoever_o thou_o shall_v bind_v upon_o earth_n it_o shall_v be_v bind_v also_o in_o heaven_n do_v declare_v and_o denounce_v the_o aforesaid_a prince_n who_o have_v make_v himself_o unworthy_a of_o empire_n kingdom_n and_o all_o honour_n and_o dignity_n and_o who_o for_o his_o iniquity_n be_v reject_v of_o god_n from_o reign_v and_o rule_v to_o be_v tie_v in_o his_o own_o sin_n and_o as_o a_o abject_a deprive_v of_o all_o honour_n and_o dignity_n and_o yet_o not_o withstand_v by_o sentence_n we_o deprive_v he_o and_o absolve_a perpetuallie_o all_o who_o be_v bind_v to_o he_o by_o oath_n of_o fidelity_n from_o this_o oath_n do_v by_o apostolical_a authority_n firm_o forbid_v that_o any_o hence_o forth_o do_v obey_v he_o as_o emperor_n etc._n etc._n 12._o gregory_n the_o seven_o in_o a_o council_n at_o rome_n in_o the_o year_n of_o our_o lord_n 1076._o excommunicate_v and_o depose_v henry_n the_o four_o for_o many_o his_o insolence_n outrage_n and_o enormity_n 25._o vide_fw-la baron_n a_o 1076._o n._n 25._o the_o excommanication_n begin_v thus_o beat_v petre_n apostolorum_fw-la princeps_fw-la inclina_fw-la quaesumus_fw-la pias_fw-la aures_fw-la tuas_fw-la nobis_fw-la &_o audi_fw-la i_o seruum_fw-la tuum_fw-la quem_fw-la ab_fw-la infantia_fw-la nutristi_fw-la &_o usque_fw-la ad_fw-la hunc_fw-la diem_fw-la de_fw-la manu_fw-la iniquorum_fw-la liberasti_fw-la qui_fw-la i_o pro_fw-la tua_fw-la fidelitate_fw-la oderunt_fw-la &_o odiunt_fw-la tu_fw-la mihi_fw-la testis_fw-la es_fw-la &_o domina_fw-la mea_fw-la mater_fw-la dei_fw-la &_o beatus_fw-la paulus_n frater_fw-la tuus_fw-la inter_fw-la omnes_fw-la sanctos_fw-la quod_fw-la tua_fw-la sancta_fw-la roman●_n ecclesia_fw-la i_o invitum_fw-la ad_fw-la sva_fw-la gubernacula_fw-la traxit_fw-la etc._n etc._n bless_a peter_n prince_n of_o the_o apostle_n we_o beseech_v the●_n to_o incline_v thy_o pious_a ear_n unto_o we_o and_o to_o hear_v me●_n thy_o servant_n who_o from_o my_o infancy_n thou_o have_v nourish_v and_o unto_o this_o day_n have_v deliver_v from_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o wicked_a who_o have_v hate_v and_o do_v hate_v i_o for_o my_o fidelity_n towards_o thou_o thou_o be_v my_o witness_n as_o be_v also_o my_o lady_n the_o mother_n of_o god_n and_o bless_a paul_n thy_o brother_n amongst_o all_o the_o saint_n that_o thy_o holy_a roman_a church_n draw_v i_o against_o my_o will_n to_o her_o government_n etc._n etc._n then_o a_o little_a after_o he_o add_v the_o excommunication_n and_o deposition_n itself_o hac_fw-la itaque_fw-la fiducia_fw-la fretus_fw-la pro_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la tuus_fw-la honore_fw-la &_o defension_n ex_fw-la parte_fw-la omnipotentis_fw-la dei_fw-la patris_fw-la &_o silij_fw-la &_o spiritus_fw-la sancti_fw-la per_fw-la tuam_fw-la potestatem_fw-la &_o authoritatem_fw-la henrico_n regi_fw-la fi●io_fw-la henrici_fw-la imperatoris_fw-la qui_fw-la contra_fw-la tuam_fw-la ecclesiam_fw-la inauditâ_fw-la superbiâ_fw-la insurrexit_fw-la totius_fw-la regni_fw-la teutonicorum_fw-la &_o italiae_fw-la gubernacula_fw-la contradico_fw-la &_o omnes_fw-la christianos_n à_fw-la vinoulo_fw-la iuramenti_fw-la quod_fw-la sibi_fw-la fecere_fw-la &_o facient_fw-la absoluo_fw-la &_o ut_fw-la nullus_fw-la ei_fw-la sicut_fw-la regi_fw-la seruiat_fw-la interdico_fw-la etc._n etc._n therefore_o build_v upon_o this_o confidence_n for_o the_o honour_n and_o defence_n of_o the_o church_n in_o the_o behalf_n of_o the_o omnipotent_a god_n the_o father_n the_o son_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n by_o thy_o power_n and_o authority_n i_o do_v take_v from_o king_n henry_n the_o son_n of_o henry_n the_o emperor_n who_o by_o a_o unwonted_a pride_n never_o hear_v of_o have_v make_v insurrection_n against_o thy_o church_n the_o government_n of_o the_o whole_a kingdom_n of_o the_o almain_n and_o of_o italy_n and_o do_v absolve_v all_o christian_n from_o the_o bond_n of_o oath_n which_o they_o have_v make_v or_o shall_v make_v unto_o he_o &_o i_o do_v forbid_v any_o to_o serve_v he_o as_o king_n but_o because_o the_o emperor_n after_o this_o submit_v himself_o and_o promise_v by_o solemn_a oath_n satisfaction_n and_o show_v exterior_o great_a penance_n the_o pope_n to_o show_v that_o he_o desire_v not_o his_o deposition_n but_o as_o a_o mean_n to_o the_o church_n true_a peace_n and_o his_o salvation_n absolve_v he_o from_o excommunication_n in_o the_o castle_n of_o canusium_n where_o then_o the_o pope_n be_v and_o admit_v he_o to_o the_o mass_n which_o he_o celebrate_v and_o in_o the_o mass_n call_v the_o emperor_n unto_o the_o altar_n and_o hold_v the_o bless_a sacrament_n in_o his_o hand_n say_v to_o the_o emperor_n ego_fw-la iam_fw-la pridem_fw-la àte_fw-la tuisque_fw-la fautoribus_fw-la literas_fw-la accepi_fw-la quibus_fw-la i_o insimulasti_fw-la sedem_fw-la apostolicam_fw-la per_fw-la simoniacam_fw-la haeresim_fw-la occupasse_fw-la i_o long_o since_o have_v receive_v letter_n from_o thou_o and_o from_o thy_o fautour_n by_o which_o thou_o have_v accuse_v i_o to_o have_v enter_v into_o possession_n of_o the_o apostolical_a seat_n by_o simoniacal_a heresy_n and_o though_o say_v he_o i_o can_v bring_v other_o testimony_n of_o those_o that_o know_v my_o life_n from_o my_o childhood_n and_o be_v author_n of_o my_o promotion_n ego_fw-la tamen_fw-la say_v he_o ne_fw-la humano_fw-la potiùs_fw-la quàm_fw-la divino_fw-la niti_fw-la videar_fw-la testimonio_fw-la ut_fw-la satisfactionis_fw-la compendio_fw-la omnem_fw-la omnibus_fw-la scandali_fw-la scrupulum_fw-la de_fw-la medio_fw-la auferam_fw-la ecce_fw-la corpus_fw-la dominicum_fw-la quod_fw-la sumptur_fw-la we_o ero_fw-la in_fw-la experimentum_fw-la mihi_fw-la hodie_fw-la fiat_fw-la innocentiae_fw-la meae_fw-la ut_fw-la omnipotens_fw-la deus_fw-la svo_fw-la i_o body_n iudicio_fw-la vel_fw-la absoluat_fw-la obiecti_fw-la criminis_fw-la suspicion_n si_fw-la innocens_fw-la sum_fw-la vel_fw-la subitanea_fw-la interimat_fw-la morte_fw-la si_fw-la reus_fw-la sum_fw-la yet_o i_o say_v he_o lest_o i_o shall_v seem_v rather_o to_o lean_v unto_o humane_a testimony_n then_o divine_a that_o i_o
thing_n he_o may_v say_v unless_o a_o anathema_n be_v add_v as_o always_o it_o be_v not_o that_o what_o the_o council_n define_v 7._o widdr._fw-la supra_fw-la n._n 7._o be_v define_v but_o as_o probable_a he_o except_v also_o that_o in_o a_o other_o of_o these_o definition_n it_o be_v define_v quod_fw-la romanus_n pontifex_fw-la si_fw-la canonicè_fw-la fuerit_fw-la ordinatus_fw-la meritis_fw-la b._n petri_n indubitanter_fw-la sanctus_fw-la efficitur_fw-la that_o the_o roman_a bishop_n if_o he_o be_v canonicallie_o ordain_v be_v make_v undoubtedlie_o a_o saint_n by_o the_o merit_n of_o s._n peter_n which_o be_v true_a take_v in_o the_o right_a sense_n because_o though_o every_o pope_n be_v not_o a_o saint_n in_o life_n and_o manner_n yet_o he_o be_v a_o saint_n in_o office_n because_o his_o office_n be_v holy_a and_o so_o even_o emperor_n be_v holy_a and_o therefore_o be_v style_v sacra_fw-la maiestas_fw-la sacred_a majesty_n 29._o bell_n li._n ●_o de_fw-fr rom._n pont._n c._n 8._o &_o tract_n de_fw-fr potest_fw-la sum_fw-la pont_n contra_fw-la barcl_n pag._n 28._o &_o seqq_fw-la schulck_n pag._n 29._o many_o other_o counsel_n i_o can_v allege_v as_o bellarmine_n and_o schulckennius_n have_v do_v but_o these_o shall_v suffice_v all_o general_n counsel_n yea_o and_o provincial_a also_o if_o they_o be_v confirm_v by_o the_o pope_n according_a to_o the_o common_a opinion_n be_v of_o infallible_a authority_n who_o list_v to_o see_v the_o other_o counsel_n let_v he_o read_v the_o author_n prealleadge_v chapter_n xii_o by_o the_o fact_n of_o the_o holy_a and_o learned_a bishop_n of_o rome_n especial_o before_o gregory_n the_o seven_o the_o same_o power_n be_v confirm_v 1._o my_o argument_n which_o i_o shall_v bring_v in_o this_o chapter_n i_o ground_n in_o the_o fact_n of_o pope_n 8._o bellarm._n supra_fw-la &_o schulck_n pag_n 36._o azor._fw-la 10._o 2._o lib._n 10._o cap._n 8._o who_o bellarmine_n schulckenius_n and_o other_o common_o produce_v to_o prove_v that_o the_o pope_n can_v depose_v prince_n for_o although_o pope_n may_v err_v in_o matter_n of_o fact_n yet_o if_o it_o have_v be_v a_o unjust_a and_o not_o to_o they_o a_o assure_a matter_n so_o many_o so_o learned_a and_o so_o holy_a pope_n will_v never_o have_v attempt_v such_o a_o thing_n and_o many_o of_o these_o deposition_n be_v decree_v in_o counsel_n also_o schulkenius_n have_v produce_v twenty_o eight_o pope_n that_o have_v denounce_v deposition_n against_o emperor_n king_n and_o prince_n i_o shall_v content_v myself_o with_o the_o pope_n who_o before_o gregory_n the_o seven_o have_v meddle_v with_o crown_n and_o sceptre_n partly_o because_o our_o adversary_n affirm_v that_o gregory_n the_o seven_o be_v the_o first_o that_o meddle_v with_o temporal_a state_n of_o prince_n partly_o because_o they_o confess_v that_o gregory_n the_o seven_o and_o other_o after_o he_o have_v depose_v prince_n partly_o also_o because_o they_o seem_v to_o give_v more_o credit_n to_o those_o former_a than_o these_o late_a pope_n although_o in_o deed_n all_o have_v the_o same_o authority_n of_o which_o only_o and_o not_o of_o sanctity_n of_o life_n deposition_n depend_v 2._o s._n gregory_n the_o great_a in_o two_o epistle_n 32._o greg._n li._n 11._o epist_n 10._o &_o lib._n 12._o epist_n 32._o threaten_v deposition_n not_o only_o against_o bishop_n and_o priest_n but_o also_o against_o king_n judge_n and_o whatsoever_o secular_a person_n that_o shall_v be_v so_o hardy_a as_o to_o infringe_v or_o violate_v privilege_n by_o he_o grant_v to_o the_o augustunenses_n and_o to_o the_o monastery_n of_o s._n medard_n for_o he_o say_v in_o the_o first_o place_n si_fw-la quis_fw-la regum_fw-la etc._n etc._n if_o any_o king_n priest_n judge_n or_o secular_a person_n acknowledge_v the_o tenor_n of_o this_o our_o constitution_n shall_v presume_v to_o do_v contrary_a thereunto_o potestatis_fw-la honorisque_fw-la svi_fw-la dignitate_fw-la careat_fw-la let_v he_o want_v the_o dignity_n of_o his_o power_n and_o honour_n in_o the_o second_o place_n he_o say_v si_fw-la quis_fw-la autem_fw-la regnum_fw-la etc._n etc._n but_o if_o any_o king_n prelate_n judge_n or_o other_o secular_a person_n whatsoever_o shall_v violate_v or_o contradict_v the_o decree_n of_o this_o apostolic_a authority_n and_o our_o command_n or_o shall_v disquiet_v and_o trouble_v the_o brother_n of_o the_o monastery_n or_o shall_v ordain_v otherwise_o then_o thus_o cuiuscunque_fw-la dignitatis_fw-la vel_fw-la sublimitatis_fw-la sit_fw-la honore_fw-la privetur_fw-la of_o what_o dignity_n or_o place_n soever_o he_o be_v let_v he_o be_v deprive_v of_o his_o honour_n which_o be_v a_o argument_n that_o s._n gregory_n think_v he_o can_v deprive_v they_o as_o those_o also_o must_v needs_o have_v acknowledge_v who_o subscribe_v to_o the_o late_a of_o the_o foresay_v decree_n to_o wit_n thirty_o bishop_n of_o several_a country_n and_o province_n together_o with_o the_o king_n and_o queen_n of_o france_n 3._o alij_fw-la codrenus_n &_o zonaras_n in_o vita_fw-la leonis_fw-la isauri_fw-la sigebert_n in_o chron._n a_o 728._o &_o alij_fw-la s._n gregory_n the_o second_o as_o above_o deprive_v leo_n isauricus_n of_o italy_n and_o the_o gabelle_n of_o that_o province_n pont._n province_n platina_n in_o gregorio_n iii_o ado_n in_o chron_n a_o 744._o ce_v in_o vita_fw-la leonis_fw-la isauri_fw-la rheg_n li._n 2_o chron._n sigebert_n a_o 750._o paul_n aemil_n li._n 2._o de_fw-la rebus_fw-la gest_n franc_n fasc_fw-la temp_v in_o zach._n otho_n frise_v li._n 5._o hist_o c._n 55._o marian._n scot._n li._n 3._o paulus_n diac._n li._n 6_o deff_fw-mi longob_n ca._n 5._o bonif._n ep_v ad_fw-la zach._n pont._n some_o attribute_n this_o to_o gregory_n the_o three_o but_o the_o reason_n be_v because_o he_o confirm_v the_o former_a excommunication_n and_o deposition_n anno_fw-la 730._o 4._o zacharias_n pope_n depose_v childeric_n king_n of_o france_n free_v all_o his_o subject_n from_o their_o fidelity_n to_o he_o and_o give_v his_o kingdom_n to_o pipine_v father_n to_o charles_n the_o great_a and_o before_o maior_fw-la domus_fw-la this_o ado_n viennensis_n cedrenus_n rhegino_n sigibert_n paulus_n aemilive_a fasciculus_fw-la temporum_fw-la otho_fw-la frisingensis_n marianus_n scotus_n paulus_n diaconus_fw-la and_o s._n boniface_n do_v avouch_v true_a it_o be_v that_o the_o peer_n and_o noble_n of_o france_n desire_v it_o and_o send_v legate_n to_o the_o pope_n but_o the_o pope_n be_v he_o by_o who_o authority_n he_o be_v depose_v what_o soever_o barclaie_n and_o widdrington_n say_v to_o the_o contrary_n and_o therefore_o the_o old_a chronicon_fw-la of_o france_n set_v forth_o by_o pitheus_n say_v that_o the_o pope_n say_v it_o be_v better_a he_o shall_v be_v king_n who_o have_v all_o the_o power_n as_o pipine_n be_v mayor_n domus_fw-la have_v the_o king_n do_v nothing_o than_o he_o that_o have_v the_o name_n only_o dataque_fw-la authoritate_fw-la suâ_fw-la iussit_fw-la pipinum_fw-la francorum_fw-la regem_fw-la institui_fw-la and_o by_o power_n give_v command_v pipine_v to_o be_v institute_v king_n likewise_o the_o author_n of_o fasciculus_fw-la temporum_fw-la say_v ipse_fw-la zacharias_n reg●●_n francorum_n scilicet_fw-la childericum_fw-la deposuit_fw-la zacharias_n do_v depose_v the_o king_n of_o the_o french_a to_o wit_n childeric_n and_o after_o add_v et_fw-la hinc_fw-la patet_fw-la potestas_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la quanta_fw-la fuerit_fw-la hoc_fw-la tempore_fw-la qui_fw-la regnum_fw-la illud_fw-la famosissimum_fw-la transtulit_fw-la de_fw-la veris_fw-la haeredibus_fw-la ad_fw-la genus_fw-la pipini_n propter_fw-la legitimam_fw-la causam_fw-la and_o here_o appear_v how_o great_a be_v the_o power_n of_o the_o church_n at_o this_o time_n see_v that_o he_o zacharias_n do_v transfer_v that_o most_o famous_a kingdom_n from_o the_o true_a heir_n to_o the_o family_n of_o pipine_n upon_o a_o just_a cause_n rhegino_n say_v per_fw-la authoritatem_fw-la apostolicam_fw-la iussit_fw-la pipinum_n regem_fw-la creari_fw-la by_o the_o apostolical_a authority_n he_o command_v pipine_v to_o be_v create_v king_n the_o same_o write_v marianus_n scotus_n say_v tunc_fw-la zacharias_n papa_n ex_fw-la authoritate_fw-la s._n petri_n apostoli_fw-la mandat_fw-la populo_fw-la francorum_fw-la ut_fw-la pipinus_n qui_fw-la potestate_fw-la regius_fw-la utebatur_fw-la etiam_fw-la nominis_fw-la dignitate_fw-la frueretur_fw-la then_o zacharias_n by_o the_o authority_n of_o s._n peter_n the_o apostle_n command_v the_o people_n of_o the_o french_a that_o pipine_n who_o exercise_v the_o regal_a power_n shall_v also_o enjoy_v the_o name_n of_o the_o dignity_n beside_o this_o paulus_n aemilius_n relate_v that_o one_o burchardus_fw-la a_o bishop_n make_v a_o oration_n to_o he_o to_o persuade_v he_o to_o it_o for_o the_o pope_n at_o first_o fear_v to_o undertake_v a_o matter_n of_o so_o great_a importance_n yet_o when_o he_o consider_v how_o all_o the_o french_a desire_v pipine_v francos_fw-la sacramento_n regi_fw-la childerico_n dicto_fw-la soluit_fw-la he_o free_v the_o french_a from_o their_o oath_n make_v to_o king_n childeric_n 5._o leo_n the_o three_o pope_n a_o holy_a prelate_n to_o who_o god_n miraculous_o restore_v both_o his_o eye_n and_o tongue_n of_o
which_o he_o be_v barbarous_o deprive_v by_o certain_a emulatour_n cteat_v and_o anoint_a charles_n the_o great_a emperor_n and_o make_v his_o son_n king_n 799._o anastas_n apud_fw-la baron_n a_o 799._o as_o anastasius_n who_o baronius_n allege_v declate_v at_o large_a which_o no_o soon_o be_v do_v but_o the_o roman_n cry_v 8._o vide_fw-la baron_n a_o 800._o &_o az_n or_o to_o 2._o lib._n 10._o instit_fw-la mor._n c._n 8._o carolo_n pijssimo_fw-la angusto_fw-la à_fw-la deo_fw-la coronato_fw-la magno_fw-la pacifico_fw-la imperatori_fw-la vita_fw-la &_o victoria_fw-la and_o the_o author_n of_o fascicul●_n temporum_fw-la say_v that_o charles_n take_v the_o diadem_n of_o the_o empire_n from_o pope_n leo_n the_o three_o zonaras_n cedrenus_n paulus_n diaconus_fw-la ado_n albertus_n krantius_n otho_n frisingensis_n marianus_n scotus_n 751._o bell._n li._n 5._o de_fw-fr rom._n pontif._n cap._n 8._o magdeburg_n cent_n 8._o ca._n 10._o col_fw-fr 751._o and_o all_o chronicler_n who_o cardinal_n bellarmine_n allege_v affirm_v the_o same_o yea_o the_o magdeburgian_o in_o blaspheme_v that_o this_o translation_n of_o the_o empire_n be_v one_o of_o the_o chief_a miracle_n of_o antichrist_n affirm_v it_o and_o although_o marsilius_n of_o milan_n who_o barclay_n and_o widdrington_n be_v enforce_v to_o follow_v against_o the_o torrent_n of_o all_o good_a autour_n affirm_v that_o the_o people_n of_o rome_n be_v the_o author_n of_o this_o translation_n yet_o cardinal_n bellarmine_n plain_o demonstrate_v the_o contrary_a not_o only_o by_o all_o historiographer_n who_o attribute_v this_o to_o the_o pope_n but_o also_o by_o this_o that_o the_o people_n of_o rome_n if_o they_o have_v any_o authority_n to_o choose_v the_o emperor_n have_v lose_v it_o when_o the_o seat_n of_o the_o empire_n be_v translate_v to_o constantinople_n and_o therefore_o for_o the_o space_n of_o five_o hundred_o year_n that_o be_v from_o constantine_n the_o great_a to_z charles_n the_o great_a never_o meddle_v with_o choose_v the_o emperor_n seqq_n lib._n 5._o the_o roman_a pontif._n cap._n 8._o §._o ad_fw-la alios_fw-la &_o seqq_n yea_o as_o cardinal_n bellarmine_n show_v the_o people_n of_o rome_n never_o meddle_v with_o the_o election_n of_o the_o emperor_n for_o that_o he_o come_v to_o the_o empire_n either_o by_o hereditary_a descent_n or_o by_o acclamation_n of_o the_o soldier_n 6._o gregory_n the_o fifte_n also_o institute_v the_o seven_o electour_n and_o give_v they_o authority_n to_o choose_v the_o emperor_n which_o manner_n be_v use_v to_o this_o day_n so_o platina_n blondus_n nauclerus_fw-la and_o other_o allege_v by_o cardinal_n bellarmine_n in_o the_o place_n above_o note_v wherefore_o as_o cardinal_n bellarmine_n do_v so_o do_v i_o urge_v our_o adversary_n with_o this_o dilemna_n either_o the_o pope_n do_v sufficient_o transfer_v the_o empire_n to_o charles_n the_o great_a and_o institute_v the_o seven_o electour_n or_o no_o if_o he_o do_v than_o he_o have_v power_n to_o dispose_v of_o temporal_a kingdom_n if_o he_o do_v not_o than_o the_o emperor_n be_v not_o legitimate_a nor_o the_o electour_n sufficient_a gregory_n the_o seven_o be_v allege_v in_o the_o former_a chapter_n 7._o these_o pope_n i_o think_v good_a to_o allege_v that_o our_o adversary_n may_v see_v that_o it_o be_v not_o true_a which_o they_o say_v to_o wit_n that_o gregory_n the_o seven_o be_v the_o first_o that_o challege_v to_o himself_o power_n to_o dispose_v of_o kingdom_n for_o all_o the_o allege_v be_v before_o gregory_n the_o seven_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o pope_n who_o have_v depose_v prince_n he_o that_o desire_v to_o know_v may_v read_v cardinal_n bellarmine_n against_o barclay_n and_o schulkenius_n against_o widdrington_n conformable_a to_o these_o fact_n of_o pope_n be_v the_o the_o doctrine_n of_o s._n 2._o 2.2_o q._n 12_o art_n 2._o thomas_n of_o aquin_n that_o great_a light_n of_o the_o church_n which_o he_o deliver_v unto_o we_o in_o these_o word_n infidelitatem_fw-la illorum_fw-la qui_fw-la fidem_fw-la susceperunt_fw-la potest_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la punire_fw-la &_o convenienter_fw-la in_o hoc_fw-la puniuntur_fw-la quod_fw-la subditis_fw-la fidelibus_fw-la dominari_fw-la non_fw-la possint_fw-la hoc_fw-la enim_fw-la vergere_fw-la posset_n in_fw-la magnam_fw-la fidei_fw-la corruptionem_fw-la quia_fw-la ut_fw-la dictum_fw-la est_fw-la hoino_fw-la apostata_fw-la pravo_fw-la cord_n machinatur_fw-la malum_fw-la &_o iurgia_fw-la seminat_fw-la intendens_fw-la homines_fw-la separare_fw-la a_o fide_fw-la et_fw-la ideo_fw-la quàm_fw-la citò_fw-la aliquis_fw-la per_fw-la sententiam_fw-la denuntiatur_fw-la excommunicatus_fw-la propter_fw-la apostasiam_fw-la a_o fide_fw-la ipso_fw-la facto_fw-la eius_fw-la subditi_fw-la sunt_fw-la absoluti_fw-la a_o dominio_fw-la eius_fw-la &_o juramento_fw-la fidelitatis_fw-la the_o infidelity_n of_o those_o who_o have_v receive_v the_o faith_n the_o church_n may_v punish_v by_o sentence_n and_o convenientlie_o in_o this_o be_v they_o punish_v that_o they_o may_v not_o bear_v rule_n over_o faithful_a christian_n subject_n for_o this_o may_v turn_v to_o a_o great_a corruption_n of_o faith_n because_o as_o it_o be_v say_v a_o man_n apostata_fw-la with_o a_o wicked_a heart_n do_v plot_n evil_a and_o sow_v brawl_n intend_v to_o separate_v man_n from_o faith_n and_o therefore_o so_o soon_o as_o any_o one_o be_v by_o sentence_n denounce_v excommunicate_v for_o apostasy_n from_o faith_n ipso_fw-la facto_fw-la by_o and_o by_o his_o subject_n be_v absolve_v from_o his_o dominion_n and_o from_o the_o oath_n of_o fidelity_n thus_o this_o learned_a doctor_n pronounce_v and_o thereby_o justifi_v these_o fact_n of_o these_o holy_a pope_n chapter_n xiii_o by_o the_o number_n of_o doctor_n who_o have_v embrace_v the_o opinion_n that_o give_v this_o power_n to_o the_o pope_n the_o same_o doctrine_n be_v prove_v betwixt_o the_o number_n gravity_n and_o authority_n of_o which_o doctor_n and_o those_o who_o stand_v for_o widdringtons_n opinion_n there_o be_v no_o comparison_n to_o be_v make_v 1._o this_o proof_n will_v not_o be_v of_o least_o force_n because_o the_o voice_n of_o the_o chief_a doctor_n of_o the_o church_n be_v the_o voice_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n which_o never_o dissenterh_n from_o that_o which_o her_o doctor_n common_o teach_v she_o and_o see_v that_o the_o voice_n of_o the_o doctor_n be_v the_o voice_n of_o christ_n according_a to_o that_o qui_fw-fr vos_fw-fr audit_n i_o audit_n 10._o luc._n 10._o he_o that_o hear_v you_o hear_v i_o and_o that_o the_o church_n be_v the_o pillar_n of_o truth_n if_o ever_o vox_fw-la populi_fw-la be_v vox_fw-la dei_fw-la 3._o 1._o tim._n 3._o the_o voice_n of_o the_o people_n the_o voice_n of_o god_n this_o sentence_n which_o the_o church_n prononnce_v part_o by_o her_o chief_a pastor_n and_o counsel_n part_o by_o her_o doctor_n initio_fw-la tract_n de_fw-fr potest_fw-la sum._n pont._n adversus_fw-la barclaium_n in_fw-la initio_fw-la must_v especial_o be_v of_o god_n but_o because_o bellarmine_n have_v exact_o set_v down_o their_o word_n i_o will_v only_o for_o brevity_n sake_n set_v down_o their_o name_n refer_v the_o reader_n to_o he_o for_o their_o sentence_n 2._o our_o of_o italy_n he_o allege_v gregory_n the_o seven_o to_o who_o may_v be_v add_v those_o prelate_n who_o as_o above_o we_o have_v see_v allow_v of_o his_o depose_n of_o henry_n the_o four_o s._n thomas_n of_o aquin_n s._n bonanenture_n aegidius_n romanus_n b._n augustinus_n triumphus_fw-la b._n joannes_n de_fw-fr capistrano_n s._n antoninus_n isidorus_n mediolanenses_n gabriel_n biel_n thomas_n caietan_n alexander_n de_fw-fr s._n elpidio_n pelrus_n de_fw-fr monte_fw-fr venetus_n petrus_n ancharanus_n sylvester_n prieras_n astensis_n nicholaus_fw-la abbas_n parnomitanus_n joannes_n de_fw-fr anania_n bartholdus_n baldus_n petrus_n a●dreas_n gambara_n restaurus_fw-la castaldus_n dominicus_n cardinalis_fw-la tuscus_n to_o who_o may_v be_v add_v cardinal_n bellarmine_n himself_o &_o cardinal_n baron_n 3._o out_o of_o france_n he_o allege_v s._n bernard_n who_o word_n above_o be_v cite_v petrus_n de_fw-fr palude_fw-la patriarch_n of_o jerusalem_n durand_n bishop_n of_o meux_n herueus_n general_n of_o the_o dominican_n jacobus_n almain_n henricus_fw-la cardinalis_fw-la ostiensis_n petrus_n bertrandus_n cardinal_n and_o bishop_n joannes_n de_fw-fr sylva_n stephanus_n aufrerius_n guilielmus_fw-la durandus_fw-la call_v speculator_n joannes_n faber_n aegidius_n bellamera_n bishop_n of_o auinion_n joannes_n quintinus_n remundus_n ruffus_n to_o who_o may_v be_v add_v genebrard_n andreas_n du_fw-fr vallius_n and_o other_o 4._o out_o of_o spain_n s._n raimundus_n pelagius_n aluarus_n joannes_n de_fw-fr turrecremata_fw-la cardinal_n cyprianus_n benetus_n arragonensis_n franciscus_n victoria_n dominicus_n à_fw-fr soto_n alphonsus_n de_fw-fr castro_n jacobus_n simanca_n dominicus_n bannes_n martinus_n ledesmius_n gregorius_n de_fw-fr valentia_n guilielmus_fw-la de_fw-la monserat_fw-la catalanus_fw-la alphonsus_n aluarez_n antonius_n cordubensis_n ludovicus_fw-la molina_n didacus_n covarrwias_fw-la ferdmandus_n vasquius_fw-la michael_n de_fw-fr aninyon_n martinus_n navarrus_n to_o who_o now_o may_v be_v add_v two_o other_o learned_a divine_n franciscus_n suarez_n and_o gabriel_n vasquez_n 5._o out_o of_o germany_n he_o produce_v stephanus_n
albestanensis_fw-la bishop_n hugo_n de_fw-fr sancto_fw-la victore_fw-la henricus_fw-la de_fw-la gandavo_fw-la vlricus_n dionysius_n carthufianus_n joanues_fw-la driedo_n albertus_n pighius_fw-la jacobus_n latomus_fw-la conradus_n brunus_n and_o to_o these_o may_v be_v add_v adolphus_n schulkenius_n and_o lessius_fw-la 6._o out_o of_o england_n he_o bring_v alexander_n of_o hales_n a_o learned_a professor_n of_o divinity_n and_o master_n to_o s._n thomas_n of_o aquin_n and_o s._n bonaventure_n holcot_n franciscus_n maironus_n joannes_n bachonus_fw-la thomas_n waldensis_n provincial_a in_o his_o time_n in_o england_n of_o the_o order_n of_o carmelites_n and_o one_o of_o the_o learn_a of_o his_o age_n cardinal_n pole_n doctor_n sanders_n to_o who_o may_v be_v add_v cardinal_n allen_n in_o his_o apology_n and_o answer_v to_o the_o libeller_n doct._n stapleton_n mr._n reynolds_n and_o diverse_a other_o of_o our_o learned_a writer_n since_o king_n henry_n the_o eight_o his_o time_n 7._o dare_v now_o our_o adversary_n show_v his_o face_n against_o such_o a_o ample_a senate_n of_o doctor_n and_o learned_a man_n can_v he_o think_v himself_o a_o good_a catholic_a that_o hold_v against_o catholic_n counsel_n chief_a pastor_n doctor_n yea_o and_o the_o catholic_a church_n which_o never_o dissent_v from_o her_o doctor_n and_o pastor_n he_o will_v say_v that_o he_o want_v not_o doctor_n also_o o_o the_o doctor_n i_o grant_v he_o may_v allege_v heretic_n for_o his_o opinion_n for_o in_o this_o he_o conspire_v with_o they_o for_o although_o as_o we_o shall_v see_v anon_o they_o arrogate_v to_o themselves_o this_o power_n yet_o they_o deny_v it_o to_o the_o pope_n nay_o say_v widdrington_n i_o have_v catholic_a doctor_n also_o to_o countenance_v my_o opinion_n and_o to_o free_v it_o from_o heresy_n yea_o temeritie_n and_o who_o be_v these_o his_o author_n he_o allege_v occam_n joannes_n parisiensis_fw-la dante_n be_v the_o poet_n almainus_n joannes_n maior_n hugo_n vulcurunus_n albericus_n and_o other_o but_o either_o these_o author_n be_v schismatickes_n as_o sigebert_n or_o they_o express_o averte_v the_o contrary_a to_o that_o for_o which_o he_o allege_v they_o as_o ocham_n and_o almain_n or_o final_o they_o neither_o affirm_v the_o pope_n power_n nor_o deny_v it_o in_o depose_v prince_n and_o so_o only_o five_o or_o six_o as_o dante_n be_v the_o poet_n sigebert_n the_o schismatic_a barclay_n bochell_n and_o lescherius_n express_o hold_v with_o widdrington_n 131._o schulck_n pag._n 131._o as_o schulckenius_n have_v show_v particular_o of_o every_o one_o of_o the_o author_n he_o allege_v and_o what_o be_v these_o obscure_a authonr_n to_o scripture_n counsel_n pope_n practice_v of_o the_o church_n so_o many_o learned_a author_n of_o italy_n france_n spain_n germany_n and_o england_n as_o be_v produce_v but_o that_o the_o reader_n may_v see_v more_o plain_o how_o little_a authority_n widdrington_n purchase_v to_o his_o opinion_n by_o his_o author_n i_o shall_v examine_v some_o of_o they_o in_o particular_a 8._o 54._o apol._n n._n 4_o disput_fw-la theolog._n sec_fw-la 3._o c._n 3._o n._n 4._o new_a yeares-guift_n pa._n 54._o widdrington_n in_o his_o apology_n and_o theological_a disputation_n and_o newyeares_n gift_n allege_v out_o of_o joannes_n azorius_fw-la diverse_a author_n as_o patroness_n of_o his_o opinion_n and_o seem_v to_o endeavour_v to_o bring_v in_o azorius_n himself_o amongst_o they_o though_o by_o the_o head_n and_o shoulder_n joannes_n azorius_n a_o famous_a jesuit_n say_v he_o affirm_v that_o it_o have_v ever_o be_v a_o great_a controversy_n betwixt_o emperor_n and_o king_n on_o the_o one_o side_n and_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n on_o the_o other_o whether_o in_o some_o certain_a case_n the_o pope_n have_v a_o right_a and_o power_n to_o deprive_v king_n of_o their_o kingdom_n etc._n etc._n and_o he_o allege_v diverse_a author_n out_o of_o azorius_fw-la who_o favour_n his_o opinion_n but_o first_o although_o he_o may_v have_v some_o reason_n to_o allege_v those_o author_n yet_o i_o can_v not_o see_v what_o reason_n he_o have_v to_o allege_v they_o out_o of_o azorius_fw-la for_o if_o he_o will_v thereby_o make_v his_o reader_n believe_v that_o azorius_fw-la allow_v his_o opinion_n for_o probable_a in_o that_o it_o be_v countenance_v by_o these_o author_n by_o he_o allege_v he_o abuse_v his_o reader_n for_o that_o azorius_n condemn_v these_o his_o author_n and_o consequent_o himself_o very_o deep_o whosoever_o please_v to_o read_v azorius_n shall_v see_v that_o he_o dispute_v this_o question_n allege_v for_o the_o first_o opinion_n 19_o tom._n 2._o lib._n 4._o instit_fw-la moral_n c._n 19_o which_o deni_v the_o pope_n authority_n of_o depose_v prince_n in_o some_o case_n lutheran_n caluiniste_n and_o marsilius_n patavinus_n a_o heretic_n and_o after_o that_o he_o say_v non_fw-la longè_fw-la ab_fw-la his_fw-la fuerunt_fw-la gulielmus_fw-la ocham_n etc._n etc._n not_o far_o different_a from_o these_o heretic_n be_v william_n ocham_n and_o joannes_n parisiensis_fw-la divine_v and_o dante_n be_v the_o flonentine_a poet_n and_o almainus_a tract_n de_fw-fr suprem_fw-la potest_fw-la laicâ_fw-la quaest_n 3._o mayor_n in_o 4._o do_v 24._o quaest_n 3._o concl_n 3._o who_o have_v follow_v ocham_n and_o then_o he_o add_v have_v sententiam_fw-la marsilij_fw-la temerariam_fw-la &_o errorem_fw-la continentem_fw-la ipse_fw-la marsilius_n &_o alij_fw-la colligere_fw-la se_fw-la arbitrabantur_fw-la imprimis_fw-la etc._n etc._n this_o temerarious_a opinion_n and_o which_o contain_v error_n marsilius_n and_o other_o think_v they_o may_v gather_v first_o etc._n etc._n and_o after_o that_o he_o add_v revera_fw-la nisilabi_fw-la &_o errare_fw-la velimus_fw-la negare_fw-la omnino_fw-la non_fw-la possumus_fw-la penes_fw-la romanum_fw-la pontificem_fw-la esse_fw-la jure_fw-la divino_fw-la utramque_fw-la potestatem_fw-la true_o if_o we_o will_v not_o be_v deceive_v and_o err_v we_o can_v not_o at_o all_o deny_v but_o that_o the_o roman_a bishop_n have_v bathe_v authority_n 6._o tom._n 2._o lib._n 10._o instit_fw-la mor._n c._n 6._o and_o after_o he_o proove_v this_o out_o of_o the_o canon_n law_n by_o divine_n also_o and_o lawyer_n the_o same_o azorius_fw-la add_v to_o these_o favourer_n of_o widdringtons_n opinion_n hugo_n michael_n vulcurunus_fw-la and_o albericus_n but_o condemn_v they_o and_o proove_v out_o of_o bartolus_n l._n 1._o ff_n de_fw-fr requirendis_fw-la eris_fw-la §_o ult_fw-ge that_o dante_n be_v be_v after_o his_o death_n almost_o condemn_v of_o heresy_n and_o he_o allege_v antonius_n 3_o p._n tit_n 21._o cap._n 5._o §_o 2._o who_o say_v that_o dante_n be_v in_o hoc_fw-la erravit_fw-la err_v in_o thu_o and_o so_o be_v put_v in_o the_o index_n among_o prohibit_v author_n and_o his_o book_n of_o monarohie_n condemn_v and_o of_o albericus_n he_o say_v he_o be_v cautè_fw-la legendus_fw-la wary_o to_o be_v read_v and_o confute_v what_o he_o say_v whereas_o therefore_o azorius_fw-la say_v that_o it_o have_v ever_o be_v a_o great_a contronersie_n betwixt_o emperor_n and_o king_n on_o the_o one_o side_n and_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n on_o the_o other_o etc._n etc._n whence_o widdrington_n will_v in_o far_o that_o his_o opinion_n be_v disputable_a and_o probable_a azorius_fw-la mean_v not_o that_o it_o have_v be_v a_o controversy_n betwixt_o bishop_n of_o rome_n and_o all_o emperor_n and_o king_n for_o see_v that_o he_o count_v this_o opinion_n of_o widdrington_n temerarious_a and_o erroneous_a therein_o he_o shall_v condemn_v all_o emperor_n and_o king_n of_o temeritie_n and_o error_n but_o he_o mean_v schismatical_a or_o heretical_a emperor_n and_o king_n especial_o such_o as_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n have_v depose_v who_o to_o hold_v their_o crown_n stand_v to_o it_o that_o the_o pope_n can_v not_o depose_v they_o whereupon_o their_o follower_n complain_v of_o gregory_n the_o seven_o and_o therefore_o in_o gregory_n the_o seven_o his_o time_n when_o the_o great_a controversy_n be_v about_o rhis_n matter_n none_o but_o the_o emperor_n depose_v and_o his_o follower_n schismatickes_n as_o he_o be_v do_v contradict_v the_o pope_n sentence_n of_o deposition_n yea_o than_o the_o king_n of_o england_n william_n the_o conqueror_n alphonsus_n king_n of_o castille_n philip_n king_n of_o france_n kanuius_n king_n of_o denmarcke_n count_n robert_n of_o flaunders_n and_o other_o prince_n hold_v league_n and_o amity_n with_o gregory_n the_o seven_o against_o the_o emperor_n and_o his_o antipope_n med_a baron_fw-fr tom_fw-mi 11._o a_o 1084_o et_fw-la anno_fw-la 1085._o n._n 11._o &_o 12_o in_o greg._n 7._o epist_n ad_fw-la greg._n 7._o quam_fw-la referunt_fw-la magdeburgenses_n cent._n 11._o cap._n 8._o de_fw-la schismatibus_fw-la circa_fw-la med_a as_o may_v be_v see_v in_o baronius_n in_o his_o eleven_o tome_n yea_o the_o emperor_n depose_v plead_v that_o he_o can_v not_o be_v depose_v but_o for_o heresy_n confess_v that_o he_o may_v have_v be_v depose_v for_o heresy_n traditio_fw-la patrum_fw-la est_fw-la say_v he_o i_o solius_fw-la dei_fw-la iudicio_fw-la obnoxium_fw-la esse_fw-la nisi_fw-la quod_fw-la absit_fw-la a_fw-la
or_o be_v take_v copulativelie_a in_o the_o clause_n allege_v as_o for_o example_n if_o one_o shall_v say_v it_o be_v heretical_a to_o say_v that_o a_o man_n may_v steal_v or_o commit_v advoutrie_n in_o that_o proposition_n or_o be_v take_v disiunctivelie_a and_o the_o proposition_n import_v that_o it_o be_v heretical_a to_o say_v that_o a_o man_n may_v either_o steal_v or_o commit_v advoutrie_n or_o because_o he_o may_v say_v this_o be_v true_a by_o reason_n of_o the_o matter_n not_o of_o the_o form_n if_o he_o shall_v say_v i_o dear_a as_o heresy_n that_o position_n which_o say_v that_o a_o man_n may_v be_v baptize_v of_o a_o heretieke_a either_o lawful_o or_o validlie_o be_v it_o not_o a_o false_a and_o heretical_a detestation_n and_o yet_o by_o reason_n of_o one_o part_n of_o the_o disiunctive_a proposition_n to_o wit_n or_o validlie_o the_o very_a like_a as_o who_o so_o mark_v shall_v perceive_v be_v the_o proposition_n allege_v and_o therefore_o it_o import_v that_o it_o be_v a_o heretical_a proposition_n to_o say_v that_o prince_n excommunicate_v and_o deprive_v by_o the_o pope_n may_v be_v either_o depose_v or_o kill_v whence_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o the_o party_n who_o swear_v that_o clause_n shall_v swear_v that_o it_o be_v heretical_a to_o say_v that_o prince_n excommunicate_v by_o the_o pope_n may_v be_v depose_v which_o notwithstanding_o be_v no_o where_o condemn_v as_o heretical_a yea_o be_v decree_v by_o general_n counsel_n and_o practise_v by_o many_o holy_a and_o learned_a pope_n allow_v of_o by_o common_a consent_n and_o last_o confess_v by_o widdrington_n himself_o as_o probable_a 50._o secondlie_o see_v that_o this_o manner_n of_o speech_n be_v often_o yea_o ordinary_o take_v in_o a_o disiunctive_a meaning_n it_o make_v this_o clause_n at_o least_o doubtful_a whether_o it_o also_o be_v not_o take_v disiunctivelie_o and_o so_o import_v that_o it_o be_v heretical_a to_o say_v that_o a_o prince_n excommunicate_v may_v be_v depose_v and_o see_v that_o no_o man_n can_v swear_v a_o doubtful_a thing_n lest_o he_o expose_v himself_o to_o perjury_n in_o swear_v false_a and_o consequent_o make_v himself_o guilty_a indeed_o of_o perjury_n because_o every_o one_o be_v esteem_v guilty_a of_o that_o sin_n or_o crime_n 3._o eccles_n 3._o to_o which_o he_o expose_v himself_o and_o qui_fw-la amat_fw-la periculum_fw-la in_fw-la illo_fw-la peribit_fw-la ht_o that_o love_v danger_n shall_v perish_v in_o it_o therefore_o he_o can_v not_o swear_v this_o clause_n have_v no_o better_a assurance_n for_o the_o truth_n thereof_o then_o as_o yet_o widdrington_n or_o any_o other_o can_v allege_v which_o be_v none_o at_o all_o and_o so_o long_o remain_v at_o the_o least_o doubtful_a and_o uncertain_a thirdlie_o widdrington_n in_o this_o his_o explication_n do_v evidentlie_o eontradict_v the_o intention_n of_o the_o king_n majesty_n parliament_n &_o author_n of_o the_o oath_n for_o their_o intention_n as_o we_o have_v see_v above_o be_v to_o secure_v the_o prince_n not_o only_o from_o kill_v but_o also_o &_o especial_o from_o deprivation_n and_o deposition_n partly_o because_o a_o king_n ordinary_o will_v choose_v as_o willingelie_o to_o be_v kill_v as_o to_o be_v deprive_v and_o depose_v he_o by_o deposition_n or_o deprivation_n be_v make_v of_o a_o king_n no_o king_n but_o a_o private_a man_n partly_o because_o when_o he_o be_v once_o deprive_v or_o depose_v he_o be_v in_o danger_n to_o be_v kill_v by_o his_o subject_n if_o he_o persist_v in_o government_n for_o than_o they_o who_o hold_v his_o deposition_n to_o be_v of_o force_n do_v hold_v he_o as_o a_o invader_n so_o that_o widdrington_n by_o this_o exposition_n make_v the_o swearer_n to_o swear_v only_o that_o the_o king_n excommunicate_v can_v be_v kill_v secure_v he_o not_o from_o deposition_n or_o deprivation_n no_o nor_o from_o kill_v as_o i_o have_v show_v and_o so_o make_v the_o oath_n frustrate_v secure_v not_o the_o king_n and_o contradict_v the_o king_n and_o parliament_n intention_n which_o they_o have_v in_o frame_v propose_v and_o command_v this_o oath_n to_o be_v take_v thereby_o to_o secure_v the_o king_n 51._o fourthlie_o although_o for_o the_o respect_n i_o owe_v and_o bear_v to_o prince_n and_o especial_o to_o my_o own_o natural_a liege_n i_o will_v not_o aver_v that_o prince_n persist_v in_o possession_n and_o government_n of_o their_o kingdom_n after_o that_o the_o pope_n have_v excommunicate_v and_o deprive_v they_o may_v be_v depose_v and_o kill_v also_o by_o their_o former_a subject_n or_o any_o other_o power_n or_o potentate_n yet_o see_v that_o many_o do_v affirm_v and_o hold_v it_o who_o opinion_n notwithstanding_o be_v no_o way_n censure_v for_o heretical_a or_o so_o much_o as_o temerarious_a or_o erroneous_a i_o do_v not_o see_v how_o that_o position_n though_o take_v in_o widdringtons_n sense_n and_o meaning_n can_v be_v abjure_v as_o heretical_a i_o acknowledge_v that_o it_o be_v condemn_v as_o heresy_n in_o the_o council_n of_o constance_n 15._o council_n constant_n sess_v 15._o to_o say_v that_o quilibet_fw-la tyrannus_n potest_fw-la &_o debet_fw-la licitè_fw-fr &_o meritoriè_fw-la occidi_fw-la per_fw-la quemlibet_fw-la vasallum_n suum_fw-la vel_fw-la subditum_fw-la etc._n etc._n every_o tyrant_n may_v and_o ought_v lawful_o and_o meritorious_o be_v kill_v by_o every_o one_o of_o his_o vasall_n or_o subject_n even_o by_o secret_a wile_n or_o ambushement_n and_o by_o crafty_a enticement_n and_o adulation_n notwithstanding_o whatsoever_o oath_n or_o covenant_n or_o without_o expect_v the_o sentence_n or_o commandment_n of_o whatsoever_o judge_n but_o this_o be_v understand_v of_o he_o who_o be_v true_a king_n but_o govern_v tyrannical_o who_o can_v not_o be_v kill_v by_o any_o one_o of_o his_o vasall_n or_o subject_n and_o not_o of_o every_o tyrant_n for_o if_o the_o tyrant_n be_v a_o open_a invader_n and_o usurper_n of_o the_o crown_n without_o all_o title_n than_o according_a to_o the_o citandos_fw-la †_o vide_fw-la d._n tho._n lib._n 1._o de_fw-la regim_fw-la princip_n c._n 6._o caiet_fw-mi 2.2_o q._n 64._o a._n 3_o &_o arragon_n ibid._n sayr_n lib._n 7._o claeu_n regiae_n cap._n 10._o vu_fw-la 4._o &_o reliquos_fw-la infra_fw-la citandos_fw-la common_a opinion_n every_o one_o of_o the_o realm_n have_v iustum_fw-la bellum_fw-la just_a war_n against_o he_o and_o so_o may_v kill_v he_o by_o way_n of_o defence_n yea_o although_o the_o tyrant_n have_v just_a title_n and_o so_o be_v true_a king_n yet_o if_o he_o tyrannize_v in_o government_n not_o howsoever_o for_o 2._o *_o ronvere_n 13._o 1._o pet._n 2._o evil_a king_n must_v be_v bear_v withal_o and_o aught_o to_o be_v obey_v but_o intolerable_o and_o so_o as_o the_o common_a wealth_n can_v not_o consist_v under_o he_o that_o then_o not_o particular_a subject_n but_o the_o common_a wealth_n after_o sufficient_a admonition_n may_v by_o common_a consent_n public_a authority_n and_o public_a sentence_n depose_v he_o as_o for_o example_n if_o the_o prince_n shall_v uniuste_o kill_v all_o his_o nobility_n cause_n their_o wife_n to_o be_v ravish_v massacre_v their_o child_n ransack_v their_o house_n and_o family_n and_o withal_o give_v their_o land_n and_o live_n to_o other_o &_o for_o no_o offence_n also_o but_o out_o of_o his_o own_o humour_n then_o say_v diverse_a author_n the_o common_a wealth_n as_o she_o make_v he_o king_n for_o although_o some_o be_v king_n by_o succession_n yet_o the_o first_o king_n as_o before_o be_v declare_v if_o he_o be_v lawful_a come_v to_o the_o crown_n by_o election_n of_o the_o people_n so_o by_o the_o same_o power_n which_o in_o case_n of_o intolerable_a tyranny_n return_v again_o unto_o she_o she_o may_v depose_v he_o and_z if_o after_o deposition_n he_o persist_v she_o may_v kill_v he_o if_o otherwise_o she_o find_v no_o mean_n to_o resist_v he_o this_o be_v the_o opinion_n of_o many_o of_o the_o offic_n the_o zen●phon_n lib._n the_o tyrant_n arist_n lib._n 2._o polit._n cap._n 5._o &_o li_z 5._o cap._n 10._o &_o 11._o cic._n lib._n 3._o the_o offic_n ancient_a philosopher_n and_o this_o also_o many_o christian_a 4._o christian_a gigas_fw-la paridius_n de_fw-fr puteo_fw-la &_o alij_fw-la citati_fw-la a_o suar._n lib._n 6._o defence_n fidei_fw-la cathol_a c._n 4._o lawyer_n and_o learned_a verò_fw-la learned_a d._n tho._n citat_fw-la in_o 2_o d._n ult._n q._n 2_o be_v 2._o ad_fw-la 5._o gerson_n par_fw-fr 4_o tract_n contra_fw-la adulatores_fw-la consid_fw-la 7._o sotus_n lib._n 5._o the_o just_a q._n 1._o be_v 3._o bannes_n 2.2_o q_o 64._o a_o 3._o dub_v 1._o §_o sed_fw-la quaeret_fw-la aliquis_fw-la valentia_n to_o 3._o disp_n 5_o q._n 8_o p._n 3._o §._o si_fw-mi est_fw-fr tyrannus_n molina_n to_o 4._o the_o just_a tract_n 3._o disp_n 6._o n._n 2._o tolet_n lib._n 5._o summa_fw-la cap._n 6_o num_fw-la 17._o sa_o in_o aphorismis_n v._o tyrannus_n num_fw-la 2._o lessius_fw-la lib._n 2._o the_o just_a &_o jure_fw-la cap._n 9_o
be_v necessary_a mean_n to_o attain_v to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o spiritual_a power_n which_o be_v conferuation_n of_o the_o church_n and_o faith_n and_o the_o attain_n of_o life_n everlasting_a and_o so_o as_o s._n thomas_n say_v 3_o d._n th._n 2._o 2._o q._n 40._o a._n 2._o ad_fw-la 3_o omnis_fw-la persona_fw-la velar_n vel_fw-la virtus_fw-la ad_fw-la quam_fw-la pertinet_fw-la finis_fw-la habet_fw-la disponere_fw-la de_fw-la his_fw-la quae_fw-la sunt_fw-la ad_fw-la finem_fw-la every_o person_n or_o art_n or_o virtue_n to_o which_o the_o end_n belong_v may_v dispose_v of_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v for_o the_o end_n see_v then_o that_o god_n have_v ordain_v temporal_a thing_n to_o the_o salvation_n of_o our_o soul_n and_o consequent_o to_o the_o church_n conservation_n when_o the_o chief_a pastor_n who_o office_n be_v to_o bring_v we_o to_o our_o spiritual_a end_n see_v that_o temporal_a thing_n be_v necessary_a to_o that_o end_n he_o can_v not_o only_o command_v but_o also_o dispose_v of_o they_o 114._o turrecr_n lib._n 2._o de_fw-fr eccl._n ca._n 114._o hereupon_o turrecremata_fw-la also_o usinge_v the_o like_a argument_n say_v to_o he_o that_o can_v dispose_v of_o the_o end_n it_o pertain_v to_o dispose_v of_o the_o mean_n and_o to_o remove_v also_o the_o impediment_n as_o it_o be_v manifest_a in_o the_o physician_n and_o sick-man_n who_o because_o they_o have_v authority_n to_o procure_v health_n may_v make_v choice_n of_o the_o mean_n and_o may_v remove_v the_o impediment_n of_o health_n wherefore_o see_v that_o the_o chief_a pastor_n be_v to_o look_v to_o the_o soul_n health_n of_o his_o subject_n he_o may_v not_o only_o command_v temporal_a thing_n but_o also_o dispose_v of_o they_o to_o that_o end_n and_o may_v remove_v they_o when_o they_o be_v impediment_n to_o that_o end_n and_o because_o the_o king_n and_o his_o kingdom_n be_v comprehend_v in_o the_o number_n of_o temporal_a thing_n which_o be_v ordain_v to_o the_o conservation_n of_o the_o church_n and_o the_o spiritual_a end_n for_o god_n make_v a_o promise_n to_o his_o chureh_n by_o the_o prophet_n esay_n 49._o esai_n 49._o that_o king_n shall_v be_v her_o nurce_a father_n and_o that_o with_o a_o countenance_n cast_v down_o to_o the_o ground_n they_o shall_v adore_v she_o 60._o esai_n 60._o and_o threaten_v that_o the_o nation_n and_o the_o kingdom_n that_o shall_v not_o serve_v she_o shall_v perish_v it_o follow_v also_o that_o when_o the_o church_n right_a and_o faith_n can_v not_o otherwise_o be_v conserve_v the_o chief_a pastor_n may_v dispose_v of_o the_o king_n crown_n and_o kingdom_n he_o in_o that_o case_n be_v subordinate_a to_o the_o church_n and_o christian_a faith_n neither_o will_v widdringtons_n answer_v serve_v to_o wit_n that_o in_o this_o case_n they_o be_v to_o be_v direct_v and_o command_v by_o the_o chief_a pastor_n for_o the_o conservation_n of_o the_o church_n but_o can_v be_v by_o he_o dispose_v because_o the_o argument_n proove_v more_o to_o wit_n that_o if_o the_o chief_a pastor_n can_v not_o only_o command_v in_o spiritual_a matter_n which_o be_v great_a but_o also_o may_v dispose_v of_o they_o he_o may_v also_o dispose_v of_o the_o temporal_a which_o be_v lesser_a they_o be_v in_o some_o case_n subordinate_a to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o spiritual_a power_n which_o be_v conservation_n of_o the_o church_n and_o faith_n and_o procuration_n of_o eternal_a salvation_n 3._o a_o second_o theological_a argument_n may_v be_v deduce_v from_o the_o authority_n argum._n the_o second_o theological_a argum._n which_o the_o church_n have_v over_o temporal_a power_n for_o as_o above_o i_o have_v show_v the_o spiritual_a power_n of_o the_o church_n be_v not_o only_o superior_a to_o the_o temporal_a in_o dignity_n but_o also_o if_o they_o who_o have_v this_o temporal_a authority_n be_v baptize_v in_o authority_n of_o command_v not_o only_o in_o spiritual_a matter_n but_o also_o in_o temporal_a when_o they_o hinder_v the_o church_n good_a or_o be_v necessary_a for_o the_o church_n conservation_n and_o therefore_o if_o the_o prince_n make_v a_o civil_a law_n which_o derogate_v to_o the_o church_n the_o pastor_n can_v command_v they_o to_o alter_v or_o to_o abrogate_v it_o s._n gregory_n correct_v mauritius_n the_o emperor_n law_n 1._o gregor_n lib._n 7._o indic_n 1._o by_o which_o he_o forbid_v soldier_n to_o enter_v into_o religion_n so_o s._n ambrose_n though_o no_o pope_n but_o archbishop_n of_o milan_n command_v theodosius_n the_o emperor_n 18_o theodor._n li._n 5_o cap._n 17._o &_o 18_o who_o have_v cause_v seven_o thousand_o at_o thessalonica_n to_o be_v kill_v for_o a_o sedition_n make_v against_o the_o magistrate_n to_o make_v a_o new_a law_n by_o which_o he_o be_v so_o restrain_v that_o when_o he_o shall_v condemn_v any_o to_o death_n or_o confiscation_n of_o good_n the_o sentenee_n shall_v not_o be_v execute_v till_o 30._o day_n after_o that_o he_o may_v have_v time_n to_o judge_v better_o when_o the_o fury_n of_o anger_n be_v pass_v and_o the_o canon_n law_n be_v full_a of_o commandment_n of_o the_o pope_n to_o prince_n even_o for_o the_o disposition_n of_o temporal_a thing_n 378._o widdr._n in_o apol._n n._n 93._o &_o num_fw-la 97.101.141_o 139.377_o 378._o which_o also_o widdrington_n grant_v for_o in_o his_o apology_n for_o the_o right_n of_o prince_n he_o ofttimes_o repeat_v that_o the_o spiritual_a power_n can_v direct_v command_n and_o compel_v by_o censure_n the_o prince_n to_o make_v law_n which_o be_v necessary_a for_o the_o church_n conservation_n and_o to_o abrogate_v law_n which_o be_v injurious_a to_o she_o and_o so_o to_o dispose_v temporal_a thing_n as_o they_o shall_v not_o prejudice_n the_o church_n but_o rather_o serve_v she_o for_o her_o necessary_a conservation_n 197._o widdr._fw-la apolog._n n._n 197._o yea_o say_v he_o potest_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la propter_fw-la instantem_fw-la svi_fw-la ipsius_fw-la necessitatem_fw-la praecipere_fw-la vel_fw-la prohibere_fw-la usum_fw-la gladij_fw-la materialis_fw-la the_o church_n when_o necessity_n urge_v can_v command_v or_o forbid_v the_o use_n of_o the_o material_a and_o temporal_a sword_n and_o then_o say_v i_o if_o the_o chief_a pastor_n can_v command_v the_o temporal_a power_n scepter_z and_o sword_n when_o the_o necessity_n of_o the_o church_n require_v he_o may_v also_o dispose_v of_o the_o temporal_a power_n scepter_z and_o sword_n 28._o widdr._n in_o apol._n resp_n nu_fw-la 28._o this_o consequence_n widdrington_n often_o time_n deni_v but_o with_o how_o little_a reason_n we_o shall_v see_v brief_o for_o although_o every_o one_o that_o can_v command_v can_v not_o dispose_v yet_o prince_n may_v i_o grant_v the_o ghostly_a father_n can_v command_v his_o penitent_a to_o give_v alm_n and_o the_o penitent_n shall_v be_v bind_v under_o sin_n to_o obey_v yet_o he_o shall_v not_o therefore_o loose_a the_o propriety_n and_o dominion_n of_o those_o his_o good_n which_o he_o shall_v have_v give_v in_o alm_n yea_o i_o grant_v that_o the_o prince_n when_o he_o command_v his_o subject_n to_o contribute_v for_o his_o war_n or_o other_o necessity_n of_o the_o realm_n do_v not_o always_o by_o and_o by_o deprive_v they_o of_o their_o dominion_n and_o propriety_n but_o yet_o i_o say_v that_o as_o he_o can_v command_v temporal_a thing_n for_o the_o necessity_n of_o the_o realm_n of_o which_o he_o have_v charge_n so_o he_o can_v by_o his_o absolute_a power_n call_v dominium_fw-la altum_fw-la when_o it_o be_v necessary_a for_o the_o common_a wealth_n not_o only_o command_v but_o also_o take_v those_o good_n from_o they_o and_o deprive_v they_o of_o the_o same_o as_o in_o many_o other_o case_n he_o also_o confiscate_v their_o good_n and_o deprive_v they_o of_o dominion_n wherefore_o see_v that_o the_o pope_n be_v the_o supreme_a visible_a and_o spiritual_a prince_n of_o the_o church_n he_o may_v not_o only_o command_v christian_n prince_n his_o subject_n to_o use_v their_o sceptre_n authority_n and_o sword_n to_o the_o necessary_a conservation_n of_o the_o church_n and_o especial_o not_o against_o the_o church_n but_o may_v also_o if_o they_o contemn_v his_o commandment_n and_o spiritual_a censure_n for_o the_o necessary_a conservation_n of_o the_o church_n and_o faith_n dispose_v of_o they_o else_o he_o be_v inferior_a to_o the_o prince_n and_o have_v not_o authority_n sufficient_a for_o the_o conservation_n of_o the_o church_n which_o be_v commit_v and_o commend_v to_o his_o charge_n 4._o argument_n the_o three_o theological_a argument_n the_o three_o argument_n shall_v be_v ground_v in_o the_o nature_n of_o the_o church_n as_o it_o be_v a_o common_a wealth_n for_o the_o church_n be_v a_o absolute_a common_a wealth_n not_o subordinate_a to_o any_o other_o as_o the_o kingdom_n be_v to_o the_o chief_a pastor_n and_o church_n now_o it_o be_v so_o that_o every_o absolute_a common_a wealth_n to_o wit_n which_o be_v no_o part_n nor_o be_v dependent_a of_o another_o have_v power_n not_o only_o to_o
enact_v law_n for_o the_o subject_n direction_n and_o to_o inflict_v punishment_n on_o they_o that_o be_v malefactor_n or_o perturber_n of_o the_o civil_a peace_n at_o home_n but_o also_o may_v make_v war_n abroad_o both_o offensive_a and_o defensive_a for_o her_o necessary_a conservation_n against_o another_o common_a wealth_n though_o otherwise_o not_o subject_a nisi_fw-la ratione_fw-la delicti_fw-la which_o shall_v invade_v her_o right_n or_o offer_v any_o notable_a injury_n and_o as_o for_o defensive_a war_n no_o man_n with_o the_o least_o show_n can_v deny_v but_o that_o every_o common_a wealth_n when_o there_o be_v just_a cause_n may_v wage_v such_o war_n because_o if_o every_o private_a man_n by_o the_o authority_n which_o he_o have_v from_o god_n and_o nature_n to_o conserve_v that_o be_v which_o they_o have_v give_v he_o 6._o l._n ut_fw-la vim_o ff●de_v lust_n barthol_n l._n 9_o ff_v o●_n poen_fw-mi it_o &_o l._n furum_fw-la ff_n de_fw-fr sicartis_fw-la alex._n 111_o c._n st_o vero_fw-la 1._o de_fw-la send_v excom_n innoc._n 111._o cap._n significasti_fw-la 1._o the_o homicide_n volunt_fw-la &_o casuali_fw-la &_o cap._n dilecto_fw-la de_fw-la send_v excom_n in_o 6._o may_v vim_o vi_fw-la repellere_fw-la and_o kill_v rather_o than_o be_v kill_v much_o more_o may_v a_o absolute_a common_a wealth_n defend_v itself_o even_o by_o arm_n against_o another_o common_a wealth_n or_o prince_n that_o uniustlie_o invade_v or_o wrong_v it_o as_o concern_v offensive_a or_o aggressive_a war_n although_o every_o private_a man_n can_v not_o revenge_v injury_n past_a but_o only_o defend_v himself_o when_o they_o be_v actuallie_o infer_v yet_o public_a person_n such_o as_o be_v prince_n magistrate_n and_o common_a wealth_n may_v and_o although_o prince_n and_o state_n dependent_a of_o another_o can_v not_o wage_v war_n without_o licence_n of_o the_o superior_a yet_o prince_n and_o common_a wealth_n independent_a may_v not_o only_o punish_v domestical_a malefactor_n and_o perturber_n of_o civil_a peace_n and_o justice_n at_o home_n but_o also_o may_v make_v war_n abroad_o against_o other_o prince_n or_o common_a wealth_n though_o otherwise_o not_o subject_a and_o may_v not_o only_o defend_v themselves_o but_o also_o revenge_v injury_n past_a and_o may_v take_v their_o enemy_n town_n and_o strong_a hold_v burn_v and_o kill_v till_o they_o have_v procure_v just_a renenge_n and_o future_a security_n and_o consequent_o may_v in_o that_o case_n depose_v and_o kill_v the_o prince_n himself_o because_o the_o end_n of_o just_a war_n be_v peace_n all_o thing_n in_o a_o just_a war_n be_v lawful_a which_o be_v necessary_a to_o obtain_v peace_n and_o security_n and_o see_v that_o many_o time_n the_o king_n or_o common_a wealth_n can_v sufficient_o revenge_v nor_o secure_v themselves_o but_o by_o invade_v the_o enemy_n country_n by_o sack_v his_o city_n kill_v his_o subject_n and_o many_o time_n the_o prince_n himself_o all_o these_o thing_n be_v lawful_a in_o a_o just_a war_n and_o have_v ever_o be_v practise_v even_o among_o the_o best_a and_o godly_a prince_n as_o even_o scripture_n aver_v counsel_n approve_v and_o history_n do_v witness_v for_o in_o the_o old_a law_n josve_fw-la david_n the_o maccabee_n yea_o abraham_n and_o in_o the_o new_a constantine_n the_o great_a theodosius_fw-la charles_n the_o great_a and_o many_o other_o be_v commend_v for_o their_o war_n against_o tyrant_n and_o the_o enemy_n of_o god_n and_o only_o heretic_n or_o favourer_n of_o heretic_n 74._o heretic_n aug._n lib._n 22._o count_n faustum_n ca._n 74._o manichee_n 169._o manichee_n thom._n waldens_n tom_n 3._o de_fw-fr sacr._n tit_n 24._o cap._n 169._o wicklefist_n and_o anabaptist_n magistratu_fw-la anabaptist_n melancth_v the_o loc_n be_v do_fw-mi de_fw-fr magistratu_fw-la condemn_v all_o war_n as_o unlawful_a to_o who_o lucae_n who_o chil._n 4._o cent_n 1._o adag_n 1._o &_o in_o ca._n 3._o lucae_n erasmus_n seem_v to_o subscribe_v and_o the_o reason_n of_o this_o aristotle_n give_v because_o say_v he_o every_o absolute_a common_a wealth_n must_v be_v sufficient_a in_o itself_o and_o must_v have_v that_o authority_n which_o be_v necessary_a not_o only_o to_o defend_v itself_o whilst_o injury_n be_v infer_v but_o also_o to_o revenge_v they_o by_o war_n after_o they_o be_v pass_v and_o so_o to_o procure_v not_o only_o just_a revenge_n but_o also_o a_o secure_a &_o stable_a peace_n for_o after_o time_n for_o if_o one_o common_a wealth_n or_o prince_n shall_v invade_v another_o and_o yet_o can_v not_o be_v repel_v no_o common_a wealth_n can_v long_o conserve_v itself_o wherefore_o when_o a_o kingdom_n or_o common_a wealth_n be_v wrong_v it_o may_v not_o only_o defend_v but_o also_o revenge_v itself_o in_o manner_n aforesaid_a for_o in_o this_o case_n one_o must_v yield_v and_o reason_n teach_v that_o the_o common_a wealth_n which_o be_v nocent_a and_o which_o offer_v wrong_a shall_v rather_o yield_v then_o that_o which_o be_v innocent_a and_o receave_v wrong_v and_o so_o if_o the_o innocent_a common_a wealth_n can_v conserve_v itself_o whilst_o the_o other_o be_v in_o prosperity_n it_o may_v make_v war_n upon_o it_o and_o ruin_v it_o or_o subjugate_v it_o rather_o than_o itself_o shall_v be_v ruin_v and_o although_o none_o but_o god_n and_o lawful_a superior_n can_v revenge_v wrong_n past_a according_a to_o that_o mihi_fw-la vindictam_fw-la &_o ego_fw-la retribuam_fw-la revenge_n to_o i_o 13._o deut._n 31_o &_o rom._n 12._o rom._n 13._o and_o i_o will_v reward_v and_o again_o dei_fw-la enim_fw-la minister_n est_fw-la vindex_fw-la in_o iram_fw-la ei_fw-la qui_fw-la malum_fw-la agit_fw-fr for_o he_o be_v the_o minister_n of_o god_n a_o revenger_n unto_o wrath_n to_o he_o that_o do_v evil_a and_o s._n 2._o 1._o pet._n 2._o peter_n bid_v we_o to_o be_v obedient_a not_o only_o to_o king_n as_o excel_v but_o also_o to_o ruler_n as_o send_v by_o he_o ad_fw-la vindictam_fw-la malefactorum_fw-la laudem_fw-la verò_fw-la bonorum_fw-la to_o the_o revenge_n of_o malefactor_n but_o to_o the_o praise_n of_o the_o good_a yet_o a_o common_a wealth_n may_v revenge_v itself_o upon_o another_o common_a wealth_n that_o offer_v injury_n by_o reason_n that_o it_o have_v public_a and_o supreme_a authority_n and_o that_o the_o common_a wealth_n that_o offer_v wrong_a make_v itself_o subject_a to_o the_o wrong_a ratione_fw-la delicti_fw-la 5._o upon_o this_o ground_n lay_v i_o can_v now_o build_v diverse_a argument_n to_o prove_v that_o which_o be_v in_o this_o chapter_n intend_v sequel_n the_o first_o sequel_n for_o first_o hence_o it_o follow_v that_o the_o church_n may_v use_v defensive_a war_n not_o only_o against_o christian_a prince_n but_o also_o even_o against_o pagan_n and_o infidel_n that_o do_v molest_v she_o because_o nature_n teach_v that_o every_o one_o may_n vim_o vi_fw-la repellere_fw-la repel_v force_n by_o force_n and_o although_o the_o ordinary_a arm_n and_o weapon_n of_o the_o church_n be_v spiritual_a as_o excommunication_n and_o such_o like_a yet_o when_o these_o will_v not_o serve_v she_o may_v use_v temporal_a for_o as_o christ_n in_o establish_v a_o church_n give_v it_o a_o spiritual_a be_v so_o he_o give_v it_o authority_n to_o conserve_v and_o defend_v this_o be_v by_o all_o lawful_a mean_n and_o therefore_o if_o every_o one_o may_v use_v all_o lawful_a mean_n to_o defend_v not_o only_o himself_o but_o even_o his_o temporal_a good_n and_o may_v rather_o kill_v then_o be_v kill_v yea_o or_o spoil_v of_o his_o good_n because_o natural_a reason_n teach_v that_o when_o god_n and_o nature_n give_v any_o be_v they_o give_v authority_n to_o conserve_v and_o defend_v it_o else_o their_o liberality_n have_v be_v in_o vain_a so_o see_v that_o christ_n have_v give_v his_o church_n a_o be_v which_o consist_v in_o a_o spiritual_a power_n to_o preach_v minister_v sacrament_n govern_v by_o law_n etc._n etc._n whosoever_o shall_v be_v so_o hardy_a as_o to_o offer_v to_o deprive_v she_o of_o this_o her_o be_v and_o power_n she_o may_v even_o with_o temporal_a arm_n which_o otherwise_o be_v lawful_a defend_v and_o maintain_v her_o right_n and_o although_o infidel_n who_o be_v never_o baptize_v be_v not_o subject_n of_o the_o church_n nor_o she_o their_o superior_a according_a to_o that_o of_o s._n paul_n 5._o 1._o cor._n 5._o quid_fw-la mihi_fw-la de_fw-la he_o qni_fw-la foris_fw-la sunt_fw-la iudicare_fw-la what_o be_v it_o to_o i_o to_o judge_v of_o they_o that_o be_v without_o yet_o there_o be_v no_o superiority_n or_o public_a authority_n require_v to_o defend_v for_o every_o private_a man_n may_v vim_o vi_fw-la repellere_fw-la repel_v force_n by_o force_n much_o more_o may_v the_o church_n or_o any_o other_o common_a wealth_n else_o if_o a_o private_a man_n may_v defend_v himself_o and_o a_o common_a wealth_n can_v not_o the_o private_a man_n shall_v be_v in_o better_a estate_n than_o a_o common_a wealth_n which_o be_v absurd_a 90._o sanderus_n lib._n 2._o the_o visib_n mo_z narch_n cap._n 4._o